Selected quad for the lemma: master_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
master_n aaron_n sacrifice_n time_n 16 3 4.1981 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68078 D. Heskins, D. Sanders, and M. Rastel, accounted (among their faction) three pillers and archpatriarches of the popish synagogue (vtter enemies to the truth of Christes Gospell, and all that syncerely professe the same) ouerthrowne, and detected of their seuerall blasphemous heresies. By D. Fulke, Maister of Pembrooke Hall in Cambridge. Done and directed to the Church of England, and all those which loue the trueth. Fulke, William, 1538-1589. 1579 (1579) STC 11433; ESTC S114345 602,455 884

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o express_a word_n deny_v heb._n 7.11_o but_o the_o first_o that_o figure_v both_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v melchisedech_n so_o that_o this_o priesthood_n be_v peculiar_a only_o to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o both_o david_n psal._n no._n and_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o 7._o do_v prove_v it_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o melchisedech_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n but_o what_o sacrifice_n he_o offer_v the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n neither_o be_v m._n heskin_n able_a to_o show_v for_o first_o he_o have_v rehearse_v the_o history_n of_o he_o which_o be_v write_v in_o gen._n 14._o and_o melchisedech_n king_n of_o salem_n bring_v forth_o bread_n &_o wine_n and_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n therefore_o he_o bless_v he_o say_v bless_a be_v abraham_n of_o god_n most_o high_a possess_a of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o bless_v be_v the_o most_o high_a god_n which_o have_v deliver_v thine_o enemy_n into_o thine_o hand_n and_o abraham_n give_v he_o tithe_v of_o all_o in_o which_o word_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o sacrifice_n afterwards_o he_o compare_v he_o in_o all_o those_o point_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n do_v heb._n 7._o which_o be_v these_o that_o he_o be_v king_n of_o righteousness_n and_o king_n of_o peace_n without_o father_n without_o mother_n without_o kindred_n on_o earth_n have_v neither_o beginning_n of_o day_n nor_o end_n of_o life_n but_o be_v liken_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o continue_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o that_o he_o bless_v abraham_n and_o that_o abraham_n pay_v tithe_n unto_o he_o in_o all_o which_o application_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o any_o sacrifice_n neither_o in_o the_o apostle_n nor_o in_o m._n heskin_n therefore_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o beginning_n m._n heskins_n have_v not_o satisfy_v the_o title_n of_o his_o chapter_n and_o very_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o two_o point_n only_o consider_v the_o priesthood_n of_o melchisedech_n that_o he_o bless_v abraham_n which_o have_v the_o promise_n and_o receive_v tithe_n of_o he_o in_o who_o loin_n levy_v the_o father_n of_o aaron_n priesthood_n be_v tythe_v who_o undoubted_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o when_o he_o apply_v the_o interpretation_n of_o his_o name_n which_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n lesser_a matter_n and_o sure_o it_o seem_v that_o master_n heskin_n can_v not_o handsome_o frame_v a_o application_n thereof_o else_o will_v he_o not_o have_v admit_v so_o plausible_a a_o matter_n and_o so_o common_o prate_v of_o among_o the_o papist_n he_o see_v first_o in_o the_o text_n be_v no_o mention_n of_o oblation_n second_o if_o there_o have_v be_v oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o will_v not_o well_o have_v figure_v that_o sacrifice_n wherein_o they_o say_v be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o wine_n hesk._n the_o fourteen_o chapter_n declare_v after_o the_o mind_n of_o chrysostom_n that_o job_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o desire_v his_o servant_n have_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n fulk_n master_n heskins_n do_v well_o to_o add_v after_o the_o mind_n of_o chrysostom_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o text_n that_o the_o word_n of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n be_v mean_v of_o hatred_n and_o not_o of_o love_n either_o that_o job_n servant_n show_v their_o desire_n to_o be_v revenge_v of_o their_o master_n enemy_n of_o who_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o two_o verse_n before_o or_o else_o as_o saint_n hieronyme_n think_v that_o he_o have_v procure_v his_o servant_n hatred_n for_o his_o entertainment_n of_o stranger_n and_o other_o virtue_n mention_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n follow_v pro_fw-la hospitalitatibus_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o virtute_fw-la quae_fw-la &_o caeter●_n sancti_fw-la deo_fw-la placuerunt_fw-la odium_fw-la seruorum_fw-la contraxerat_fw-la so_o that_o this_o matter_n stand_v not_o upon_o any_o certain_a figure_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o upon_o chrysostom_n mind_n unto_o which_o you_o hear_v the_o contrary_a mind_n of_o hieronyme_n but_o ●owe_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o the_o authority_n of_o chrysostom_n make_v for_o he_o his_o word_n be_v as_o he_o cite_v they_o out_o of_o hom._n 45._o in_o 6._o joan._n ut_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la solùm_fw-la per_fw-la dilectionem_fw-la etc_n etc_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v convert_v into_o that_o flesh_n not_o only_o by_o love_n but_o also_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o that_o meat_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o for_o when_o he_o will_v show_v his_o love_n towards_o we_o he_o have_v mix_v himself_o with_o we_o by_o his_o body_n and_o make_v himself_o one_o with_o we_o that_o the_o body_n may_v be_v unite_v to_o the_o head_n these_o last_o word_n for_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o they_o that_o love_v especial_o in_o m._n heskins_n translation_n be_v leave_v out_o i_o know_v not_o for_o what_o cause_n peradventure_o of_o negligence_n this_o do_v job_n signify_v by_o his_o servant_n of_o who_o he_o be_v love_v especial_o which_o declare_v their_o love_n do_v say_v who_o will_v give_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o his_o flesh_n which_o thing_n christ_n do_v that_o he_o may_v bind_v we_o to_o he_o with_o g●●●ter_a love_n and_o that_o he_o may_v show_v his_o desire_n that_o he_o have_v to_o we_o suffer_v himself_o not_o only_o to_o be_v see_v of_o they_o that_o desire_v but_o also_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o eat_v and_o their_o tooth_n to_o be_v fasten_v in_o his_o flesh_n and_o all_o to_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o he_o wherefore_o let_v we_o rise_v from_o that_o table_n as_o lion_n breathe_a fire_n terrible_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o let_v we_o know_v our_o head_n and_o what_o love_n he_o have_v show_v unto_o we_o parent_n have_v oftentimes_o give_v their_o child_n to_o be_v nourish_v of_o other_o but_o i_o do_v feed_v with_o my_o own_o flesh_n i_o give_v myself_o unto_o they_o i_o favour_v all_o i_o give_v a_o exceed_a good_a hope_n to_o all_o of_o thing_n to_o come_v he_o that_o give_v himself_o so_o unto_o we_o in_o this_o life_n much_o more_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v i_o will_v be_v your_o brother_n and_o i_o take_v flesh_n and_o blood_n with_o you_o for_o your_o sake_n and_o by_o what_o thing_n i_o be_o join_v to_o you_o the_o same_o i_o have_v give_v to_o you_o again_o in_o this_o long_a speech_n of_o chrysostom_n what_o be_v there_o that_o make_v for_o master_n heskins_n bill_n that_o he_o have_v promote_v into_o the_o parliament_n house_n and_o not_o rather_o altogether_o against_o it_o for_o first_o it_o can_v not_o be_v necessary_o conclude_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o chrysostom_n speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o rather_o of_o that_o table_n meat_n give_v and_o eat_v of_o christ_n flesh_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o six_o of_o saint_n john_n where_o no_o word_n be_v of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o supper_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o institute_v second_o if_o we_o shall_v never_o so_o much_o understand_v this_o speech_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o must_v we_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v figurative_a or_o else_o there_o will_v follow_v infinite_a absurdity_n beside_o such_o as_o m._n heskins_n affirm_v wherefore_o i_o will_v reason_v thus_o christ_n by_o this_o say_n of_o chrysostom_n be_v none_o otherwise_o eat_v than_o he_o be_v see_v but_o he_o be_v not_o see_v corporal_o but_o spiritual_o by_o faith_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o eat_v corporal_o but_o spiritual_o by_o faith_n and_o likewise_o thus_o as_o christ_n be_v touch_v and_o tooth_n fasten_v in_o his_o flesh_n so_o be_v he_o give_v or_o eat_v but_o he_o be_v not_o touch_v corporal_o or_o natural_o nor_o tooth_n fasten_v in_o his_o flesh_n corporal_o but_o spiritual_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o give_v nor_o eat_v in_o the_o sacrament_n corporal_o but_o spiritual_o the_o major_n of_o these_o argument_n be_v chrysostom_n word_n the_o minor_n be_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o papist_n which_o affirm_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n invisible_o and_o do_v correct_v the_o recantation_n of_o berengarius_fw-la where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n the_o conclusion_n i_o trust_v be_v right_o infer_v but_o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o handsome_a stuff_n m._n heskins_n gather_v out_o of_o this_o text_n of_o chrysostom_n first_o that_o we_o be_v join_v to_o christ_n two_o way_n by_o love_n and_o by_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o in_o other_o term_n be_v call_v spiritual_o and_o real_o mark_v this_o wise_a division_n of_o spiritual_o and_o real_o as_o though_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v join_v spiritual_o
saunder_n perhaps_o will_v insinuate_v and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n be_v describe_v by_o eusebius_n socrates_n theodore_n etc_n etc_n by_o the_o doctrine_n utter_v in_o preach_v write_n and_o consent_n in_o counsel_n and_o do_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o altogether_o or_o chief_o by_o their_o know_a government_n as_o master_n saunder_n affirm_v as_o for_o example_n eusebius_n show_v the_o doctrine_n of_o clement_n out_o of_o his_o writing_n for_o the_o allowance_n of_o marriage_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v marry_v &_o beget_v child_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 30._o socrates_n show_v that_o spiridion_n a_o bishop_n of_o cypress_n in_o time_n of_o his_o bishopric_n of_o great_a humility_n keep_v sheep_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 12._o sozomenus_n say_v he_o have_v a_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o show_v his_o judgement_n for_o eat_v flesh_n on_o a_o fast_a day_n account_v he_o no_o christian_n that_o will_v refuse_v it_o lib._n 1._o cap_n 11._o final_o although_o some_o church_n have_v be_v know_v by_o their_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n yet_o have_v there_o be_v infinite_a church_n know_v to_o be_v in_o the_o world_n who_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n be_v altogether_o unknown_a and_o although_o some_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a company_n have_v be_v know_v by_o their_o head_n yet_o not_o all_o for_o the_o acephali_n be_v so_o call_v because_o they_o have_v no_o head_n the_o anthropomorphites_n also_o be_v rustical_a monk_n or_o eremite_n in_o egypt_n under_o no_o head_n of_o their_o own_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n which_o be_v a_o catholic_a niceph._n lib._n 13._o cap_n 10._o 8_o although_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n cease_v not_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n nor_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n be_v ever_o darken_v yet_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n begin_v then_o to_o be_v dim_a and_o some_o altogether_o dark_a because_o they_o light_v not_o their_o candle_n at_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o only_a true_a light_n shine_a in_o the_o dark_a but_o decline_v to_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o saint_n paul_n 2._o thess._n 2._o of_o the_o apostasy_n and_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n 1._o tim._n 4._o toward_o the_o come_n &_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o m._n saunder_n say_v that_o after_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n the_o church_n be_v spread_v into_o more_o country_n than_o it_o be_v before_o but_o the_o contrary_n for_o mahomet_n soon_o after_o pervert_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n whereas_o africa_n long_v before_o be_v overrun_v and_o christianity_n spoil_v by_o the_o vandal_n which_o be_v either_o heathen_n or_o arrian_n notwithstanding_o some_o small_a country_n have_v be_v since_o that_o time_n turn_v to_o the_o christian_a profession_n and_o as_o it_o be_v true_a that_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n must_v still_o be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o church_n and_o christ_n never_o forsake_v the_o same_o so_o be_v it_o false_a that_o popish_a bishop_n &_o priest_n which_o either_o be_v ignorant_a or_o altogether_o negligent_a in_o feed_v and_o teach_v the_o church_n with_o the_o food_n and_o doctrine_n of_o god_n word_n whereof_o saint_n paul_n speak_v ephesi_n 4._o or_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n in_o steed_n thereof_o be_v those_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n by_o who_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v continue_v though_o they_o sit_v in_o the_o same_o place_n where_o sometime_o the_o true_a teacher_n sit_v even_o as_o antichrist_n their_o head_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_o which_o be_v the_o proper_a place_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v the_o credit_n of_o such_o late_a writer_n as_o account_v they_o for_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o godly_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n sufficient_a to_o authorise_v they_o for_o such_o in_o deed_n when_o their_o whole_a life_n and_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o ancient_a godly_a pastor_n &_o doctor_n 9_o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v for_o the_o first_o 100l_n year_n after_o christ_n only_o or_o chief_o by_o the_o bishops_z &_o pastor_n thereof_o but_o by_o their_o doctrine_n agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o we_o to_o deny_v the_o late_a rout_n that_o profess_v not_o the_o same_o doctrine_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o place_n without_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o same_o true_a doctrine_n can_v no_o more_o defend_v the_o pope_n &_o popery_n than_o it_o can_v defend_v caiphas_n &_o sadduceisme_n for_o caiphas_n a_o sadducei_n which_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n can_v more_o certain_o declare_v his_o personal_a and_o local_a succession_n from_o aaron_n than_o the_o pope_n can_v from_o peter_n 10_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o that_o it_o be_v false_a which_o master_n saunder_n again_o say_v to_o be_v true_a that_o eusebius_n and_o other_o writer_n point_v forth_o the_o church_n of_o 500_o year_n only_o or_o chief_o by_o bishop_n which_o rule_v in_o rome_n antioch_n alexandria_n etc_n etc_n the_o doctrine_n &_o act_n of_o those_o bishop_n agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n former_a be_v their_o description_n &_o not_o their_o personal_a or_o local_a succession_n as_o it_o be_v account_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o commend_v their_o counterfeit_a bishop_n be_v in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o where_o he_o say_v nothing_o in_o the_o margin_n august_n ep._n 165._o that_o in_o old_a time_n they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v heretic_n which_o depart_v from_o the_o know_a company_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n agree_v in_o one_o faith_n etc_n etc_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o then_o this_o faith_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a not_o only_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o same_o augustine_n say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n quanquam_fw-la nos_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la de_fw-fr istis_fw-la documentis_fw-la praesumamus_fw-la quàm_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n sanctis_fw-la although_o we_o do_v not_o presume_v so_o much_o of_o those_o document_n as_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o conclude_v all_o practice_n and_o counsel_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v then_o refuse_v counsel_n even_o as_o they_o be_v now_o cyprian_n refuse_v the_o practice_n of_o minister_a the_o communion_n with_o water_n because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n augustine_n refuse_v the_o practice_n of_o cyprian_a and_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n ▪_o for_o rebaptise_v they_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n our_o church_n refuse_v the_o mass_n the_o lateran_n and_o the_o tridentin_n counsel_n without_o danger_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n 11_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o spiritual_a collection_n of_o many_o member_n into_o one_o body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a head_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v eph._n 3_n cor._n 15._o the_o unity_n hereof_o be_v maintain_v by_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o his_o word_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n the_o order_n of_o particular_a church_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o several_a government_n of_o they_o but_o their_o whole_a church_n although_o it_o be_v like_o a_o army_n of_o man_n well_o set_v in_o array_n yet_o can_v it_o have_v no_o one_o chief_a captain_n in_o earth_n to_o direct_v it_o but_o he_o that_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o fit_v in_o heaven_n not_o only_o to_o overlook_v it_o but_o to_o rule_v and_o order_v it_o for_o no_o mortal_a man_n can_v look_v into_o all_o place_n know_v all_o case_n provide_v against_o all_o mischief_n nor_o give_v aid_n in_o all_o danger_n 12_o therefore_o peter_n be_v none_o such_o and_o although_o pascere_fw-la be_v both_o to_o feed_v and_o rule_v yet_o it_o be_v to_o rule_v like_o a_o shepherd_n and_o not_o like_o a_o emperor_n neither_o be_v the_o sheep_n by_o christ_n commit_v to_o peter_n more_o than_o to_o the_o other_o because_o he_o love_v more_o than_o the_o other_o but_o peter_n be_v charge_v as_o he_o will_v by_o his_o forwardness_n show_v more_o zeal_n and_o love_n then_o the_o rest_n so_o to_o employ_v the_o same_o to_o the_o feed_n of_o christ_n flock_n and_o whereas_o master_n sanders_n quote_v chrysostom_n in_o joan_n hom._n 87._o i_o know_v not_o wherefore_o except_o it_o be_v to_o show_v the_o prerogative_n of_o peter_n above_o the_o rest_n you_o shall_v hear_v what_o his_o judgement_n be_v
proof_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o controversy_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o abridge_v it_o but_o for_o order_n sake_n the_o apostle_n learn_v of_o christ_n in_o three_o year_n study_n prayer_n be_v require_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o origen_n judgement_n the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n learn_v of_o their_o elder_n as_o clemens_n mark_v linus_n cletus_n of_o peter_n titus_n timotheus_n luke_n &_o dionise_n of_o paul_n and_o so_o one_o of_o a_o other_o basil_n and_o gregory_n nazianzen_n study_v thirteen_o year_n in_o a_o monastery_n hieronyme_n learned_a of_o the_o hebrues_n &_o trust_v not_o his_o own_o judgement_n wherefore_o all_o rash_a reader_n and_o arrogant_a teacher_n may_v be_v abash_v which_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v before_o they_o be_v learn_v whereas_o no_o man_n may_v be_v his_o own_o teacher_n in_o the_o scripture_n all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o shall_v be_v grant_v to_o m._n heskin_n without_o any_o strife_n at_o all_o but_o that_o which_o he_o also_o grant_v though_o it_o be_v not_o very_o liberal_o yet_o it_o must_v not_o be_v refuse_v that_o in_o s._n hieronymies_n time_n many_o do_v study_v the_o scripture_n which_o if_o the_o people_n can_v now_o reverent_o and_o meek_o use_v may_v be_v tolerate_v well_o then_o the_o allowance_n of_o antiquity_n be_v of_o our_o side_n and_o the_o conditional_a toleration_n of_o m._n heskin_n for_o i_o may_v not_o say_v of_o the_o popish_a church_n know_v what_o horrible_a persecution_n they_o practise_v against_o they_o which_o have_v but_o a_o book_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n find_v in_o their_o hand_n or_o house_n although_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o read_v it_o wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a that_o he_o charge_v the_o proclaimer_n with_o slander_v their_o church_n to_o bring_v she_o in_o hatred_n with_o the_o lie_v people_n as_o though_o she_o have_v now_o forbid_v they_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n whereas_o he_o know_v no_o such_o prohibition_n give_v to_o the_o lie_v people_n universal_o but_o the_o reason_n be_v most_o monstrous_a for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o prohibition_n there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o many_o lay_v man_n which_o have_v both_o read_v and_o write_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o their_o native_a tongue_n etc_n etc_n as_o though_o learned_a lie_v man_n can_v not_o have_v readd_a the_o scripture_n but_o in_o their_o mother_n tongue_n but_o the_o church_n fear_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o unlearned_a lie_v man_n forbid_v they_o but_o such_o lay_v man_n as_o understand_v the_o scripture_n in_o hebrew_n &_o greek_a the_o church_n will_v allow_v they_o to_o read_v they_o in_o english_a oh_o wise_a &_o provident_a church_n nay_o marvel_v not_o at_o this_o for_o the_o learned_a if_o they_o be_v rash_a fall_n into_o heresy_n much_o more_o the_o unlearned_a and_o the_o learned_a also_o yea_o and_o physician_n themselves_o sometime_o take_v surfeite_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o sure_a way_n for_o the_o people_n never_o to_o eat_v meat_n noble_a man_n and_o wiseman_n sometime_o have_v their_o house_n burn_v therefore_o it_o be_v much_o more_o dangerous_a for_o poor_a and_o simple_a man_n to_o have_v fire_n in_o their_o house_n the_o knowledge_n of_o mystery_n must_v not_o be_v make_v common_a to_o all_o man_n for_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o suffer_v genesis_n and_o cantica_fw-la to_o be_v read_v of_o young_a man_n before_o 30._o year_n of_o age_n the_o heathen_a man_n also_o as_o the_o roman_n &_o philosopher_n keep_v close_o their_o secret_n the_o one_o sibyllaes_n book_n the_o other_o moral_a philosophy_n &_o especial_o metaphysike_n if_o i_o have_v time_n i_o may_v make_v sport_n with_o this_o metaphysical_a argument_n 44._o that_o christian_a man_n must_v follow_v the_o practice_n of_o infidel_n but_o i_o must_v pass_v over_o to_o the_o rest_n chrysostom_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o well_o as_o hieronyme_n in_o the_o latin_a will_v have_v the_o people_n to_o learn_v by_o hear_v their_o teacher_n and_o not_o only_o by_o read_v themselves_o because_o the_o scripture_n be_v dark_a and_o be_v a_o storehouse_n not_o common_a for_o all_o man_n but_o out_o of_o which_o the_o steward_n must_v deliver_v to_o every_o man_n his_o portion_n remember_v all_o this_o notwithstanding_o that_o m._n heskins_n confess_v before_o that_o chrysostom_n do_v often_o earnest_o exhort_v the_o lay_n and_o unlearned_a people_n to_o the_o diligent_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n then_o follow_v similitude_n of_o young_a child_n and_o unthrift_n the_o one_o if_o they_o feed_v themselves_o the_o meat_n run_v about_o their_o mouth_n bosom_n and_o clothes_n the_o other_o spend_v their_o father_n good_n in_o suit_n and_o quarrel_n and_o contention_n with_o their_o brethren_n so_o man_n without_o wit_n &_o grace_n abuse_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o hurt_n of_o other_o &_o no_o profit_n of_o themselves_o except_o all_o lie_v man_n want_v wit_n and_o grace_n these_o similitude_n prove_v nothing_o for_o many_o priest_n also_o want_v wit_n &_o grace_n who_o you_o admit_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n after_o similitude_n come_v example_n valdo_n a_o unlearned_a man_n cause_v book_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v translate_v and_o so_o begin_v the_o sect_n of_o valdenses_n or_o pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n out_o of_o the_o same_o fountain_n of_o ignorance_n spring_v the_o heretic_n call_v begradi_n turrelupini_fw-la valdo_n be_v a_o godly_a man_n &_o see_v the_o ignorance_n and_o ungodliness_n of_o the_o priest_n do_v very_o well_o to_o procure_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o upon_o good_a ground_n depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n what_o the_o other_o be_v as_o story_n be_v uncertain_a so_o i_o leave_v they_o in_o doubt_n but_o luther_n and_o zwinglius_fw-la be_v charge_v to_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v easy_a and_o make_v it_o free_a for_o all_o man_n to_o read_v and_o expound_v they_o and_o teach_v that_o not_o only_a man_n but_o also_o woman_n may_v open_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o as_o well_o a_o child_n and_o a_o woman_n absolve_v as_o a_o bishop_n if_o these_o be_v not_o mere_a slander_n he_o will_v have_v set_v down_o their_o own_o word_n the_o circumstance_n of_o which_o no_o doubt_n will_v discharge_v they_o of_o such_o absurdity_n as_o he_o collect_v for_o they_o will_v never_o affirm_v every_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v easy_a nor_o woman_n but_o in_o case_n where_o all_o man_n or_o the_o most_o fail_v of_o knowledge_n to_o teach_v as_o the_o prophetess_n of_o the_o old_a law_n do_v nor_o woman_n and_o child_n to_o absolve_v as_o well_o as_o a_o godly_a bishop_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o perhaps_o better_o than_o a_o ignorant_a popish_a prelate_n likewise_o where_o he_o charge_v luther_n to_o boast_v that_o he_o be_v ignorant_a in_o no_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o bring_v in_o his_o own_o word_n wherein_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o have_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o say_v also_o that_o it_o be_v most_o impudent_a rashness_n for_o any_o man_n to_o profess_v that_o he_o understand_v any_o one_o book_n of_o scripture_n in_o all_o part_n i_o say_v the_o conference_n of_o these_o place_n do_v declare_v that_o no_o man_n except_o he_o be_v blind_a mad_a or_o drink_v with_o malice_n will_v believe_v the_o slander_n of_o boast_v to_o be_v true_a in_o manner_n and_o form_n as_o master_n heskins_n set_v it_o down_o have_v vomit_v his_o malice_n against_o luther_n &_o zwinglius_fw-la he_o inveigh_v with_o main_a sail_n of_o open_a rail_n against_o the_o people_n of_o our_o time_n for_o the_o rashness_n and_o disorder_n of_o some_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o talk_n but_o rash_a babble_n of_o predestination_n free_a will_n justification_n yea_o god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n &_o especial_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o no_o where_o but_o in_o tavern_n inn_n alehouse_n and_o barbarshop_n in_o street_n highway_n and_o field_n and_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o woman_n boy_n and_o girl_n god_n be_v thank_v this_o slander_n be_v false_a although_o there_o be_v great_a rashness_n in_o some_o and_o unreligiousnesse_n in_o more_o yet_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n profit_n much_o by_o read_v of_o his_o word_n we_o confess_v with_o gregory_n nazianzene_n that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o every_o man_n rash_o to_o dispute_v of_o god_n nor_o yet_o of_o divine_a matter_n but_o with_o humility_n and_o sobriety_n which_o they_o shall_v learn_v no_o where_o so_o well_o as_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n the_o
and_o your_o author_n say_v he_o drink_v none_o other_o blood_n but_o that_o he_o pour_v upon_o they_o here_o be_v also_o allege_v chrysostom_n name_n for_o christ_n drink_v of_o his_o blood_n but_o his_o word_n be_v refer_v to_o another_o place_n then_o follow_v a_o conclusion_n if_o christ_n drink_v his_o own_o blood_n he_o drink_v it_o spiritual_o or_o corporal_o spiritual_o he_o can_v not_o wherefore_o he_o drink_v it_o corporal_o this_o be_v very_o round_o deal_v m._n heskins_n but_o if_o he_o can_v drink_v his_o blood_n i_o pray_v you_o why_o can_v he_o not_o drink_v it_o spiritual_o as_o well_o &_o rather_o then_o corporal_o for_o if_o he_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n he_o also_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n which_o if_o it_o sound_v not_o gross_o in_o your_o ear_n it_o be_v because_o you_o have_v a_o gross_a understanding_n in_o this_o chapter_n two_o lord_n of_o the_o parliament_n be_v require_v of_o their_o judgement_n have_v give_v their_o voice_n both_o direct_o against_o his_o bill_n for_o the_o carnal_a presence_n hesk._n the_o seventeen_o chapter_n proceed_v in_o the_o same_o matter_n by_o s._n cyprian_n and_o euthymius_n master_n heskin_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o preface_n promise_v great_a sincerity_n fulke_n and_o every_o where_o object_v impudency_n and_o insincerity_n against_o the_o proclaimer_n and_o his_o complice_n but_o see_v what_o sincerity_n he_o use_v that_o match_v euthymius_n scarce_o worthy_a to_o be_v a_o burgess_n of_o the_o low_a house_n ●ith_o cyprian_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a baron_n of_o the_o upper_a house_n and_o yet_o afterward_o he_o himself_o place_v he_o in_o the_o low_a house_n that_o be_v among_o the_o writer_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o nine_o hundred_o year_n whereas_o the_o high_a house_n consist_v of_o they_o that_o write_v within_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n as_o the_o bishop_n who_o he_o term_v the_o proclaimer_n make_v his_o challenge_n and_o certain_o euthymius_n be_v never_o account_v for_o a_o lord_n of_o the_o parliament_n before_o he_o be_v call_v thereto_o by_o master_n heskin_n write_v which_o of_o what_o force_n it_o be_v to_o make_v a_o baron_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n for_o he_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1170._o notwithstanding_o we_o will_v examine_v his_o voice_n as_o it_o come_v in_o order_n but_o we_o must_v first_o consider_v the_o voice_n of_o cyprian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v this_o the_o supper_n therefore_o be_v order_v among_o the_o sacramental_a meat_n domini_fw-la there_o meet_v together_o the_o new_a ordinance_n and_o the_o old_a and_o when_o the_o lamb_n be_v consume_v or_o eat●n_v which_o the_o old_a tradition_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o master_n do_v set_v before_o his_o disciple_n the_o inconsumptible_a meat●_n neither_o be_v the_o people_n now_o bid_v to_o feast_n painful_o wrought_v with_o expense_n and_o cunning_a but_o the_o food_n of_o immortality_n be_v give_v differ_v from_o common_a meat_n retain_v the_o kind_n of_o appearance_n of_o corporal_a substance_n but_o prove_v by_o invisible_a efficiency_n the_o presence_n of_o god_n power_n or_o the_o divine_a virtue_n to_o be_v there_o in_o this_o say_n first_o there_o be_v never_o a_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o the_o chapter_n but_o only_o that_o the_o new_a institution_n succeed_v the_o old_a which_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o as_o baptism_n succeed_v circumcision_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o circumcision_n a_o figure_n of_o baptism_n second_o note_n that_o he_o do_v not_o affirm_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n natural_a body_n but_o the_o invisible_a work_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n and_o so_o his_o voice_n be_v flat_o aga_v master_n heskins_n bill_n now_o let_v we_o consider_v his_o fond_a collection_n first_o that_o christ_n give_v inconsumptible_a meat_n the_o sacramentary_n give_v consumptible_a meat_n for_o they_o give_v but_o bread_n this_o be_v a_o false_a slander_n a_o thousand_o time_n repeat_v for_o they_o give_v not_o bread_n only_o but_o even_o the_o same_o inconsumptible_a meat_n by_o the_o invisible_a work_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o cyprian_n affirm_v that_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n but_o he_o urge_v that_o it_o be_v put_v before_o they_o take_v by_o hand_n &_o lay_v in_o sight_n which_o the_o merit_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o passion_n can_v not_o be_v see_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o this_o man_n agree_v with_o cyprian_a cyprian_n say_v it_o be_v by_o invisible_a work_n of_o god_n favour_n he_o say_v it_o be_v put_v before_o they_o for_o so_o he_o translate_v apponit_fw-la take_v by_o hand_n and_o lay_v in_o sight_n his_o second_o collection_n be_v that_o it_o differ_v from_o common_a meat_n retain_v the_o form_n of_o corporal_a substance_n which_o can_v neither_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o differ_v not_o from_o common_a meat_n nor_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n which_o they_o call_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n because_o that_o retain_v not_o the_o form_n of_o corporal_a substance_n a_o wise_a reason_n disjoin_v and_o sever_a thing_n that_o shall_v be_v take_v together_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n differ_v from_o common_a water_n and_o contain_v the_o form_n of_o corporal_a substance_n by_o invisible_a work_n prove_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n power_n to_o be_v there_o so_o do_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o although_o of_o themselves_o they_o be_v no_o more_o holy_a than_o other_o creature_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v consecrate_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o differ_v as_o much_o from_o common_a meat_n as_o the_o body_n and_o the_o soul_n do_v as_o temporal_a life_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o heaven_n and_o earth_n do_v differ_v so_o do_v the_o water_n consecrate_v for_o baptism_n differ_v from_o common_a water_n his_o three_o collection_n that_o it_o be_v call_v the_o food_n of_o immortality_n which_o can_v be_v bare_a material_a bread_n a_o true_a collection_n for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o bare_a material_a bread_n but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n represent_v by_o material_a bread_n as_o a_o material_a laver_n be_v the_o water_n of_o regeneration_n but_o not_o bare_a material_a water_n for_o confirmation_n be_v bring_v in_o ignatius_n ex_fw-la ep._n ad_fw-la ephe._n be_v you_o teach_v of_o the_o comforter_n obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o priest_n with_o unswarue_v or_o stable_a mind_n break_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o medicine_n of_o immortality_n the_o preservative_a of_o not_o die_v but_o of_o live_v by_o jesus_n christ._n although_o no_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v not_o more_o wilful_a than_o wise_a will_v grant_v this_o epistle_n to_o be_v write_v by_o that_o ancient_a father_n ignatius_n who_o name_n it_o bear_v yet_o do_v this_o say_n contain_v nothing_o but_o very_o sound_a doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o call_v bread_n that_o i●_z break_v to_o be_v the_o medicine_n of_o immortality_n m._n heskins_n urge_v as_o before_o that_o it_o can_v none_o be_v bare_a bread_n which_o have_v such_o effect_n which_o i_o grant_v willing_o but_o i_o reply_v upon_o he_o that_o it_o can_v be_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o break_v for_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o break_v but_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n to_o signify_v the_o break_n and_o participation_n of_o his_o body_n but_o he_o proceed_v to_o another_o speech_n of_o cyprian_a which_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o more_o apparent_a speech_n for_o his_o purpose_n the_o word_n be_v these_o panis_n iste_fw-la quem_fw-la dominus_fw-la discipulis_fw-la porrigebat_fw-la non_fw-la effigy_n sed_fw-la natura_fw-la mutatus_fw-la omnipotentia_fw-la verbi_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la caro_fw-la et_fw-fr fiout_fw-fr in_o persona_fw-la christi_fw-la humanitas_fw-la videbatur_fw-la &_o lateba●_n divinitas_fw-la ita_fw-la sacramento_fw-la visibili_fw-la ineffabiliter_fw-la se_fw-la divina_fw-la infudie_n essentia_fw-la this_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n do_v reach_v unto_o his_o disciple_n be_v change_v not_o in_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o humanity_n be_v see_v the_o divinity_n be_v hide_v even_o so_o the_o divine_a essence_n have_v pour_v itself_o unspeakable_o into_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n the_o papist_n esteem_v this_o place_n to_o be_v a_o invincible_a bulwark_n of_o their_o transubstantiation_n but_o alas_o it_o be_v soon_o overthrow_v when_o the_o meaning_n of_o cyprian_a be_v bolt_v out_o not_o only_o by_o sentence_n go_v before_o and_o after_o this_o say_n but_o also_o by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o this_o same_o sentence_n for_o he_o make_v a_o manifest_a difference_n between_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n and_o the_o divine_a essence_n which_o
begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n ▪_o he_o say_v there_o be_v never_o heretic_n but_o have_v some_o show_n of_o argument_n to_o avouch_v his_o heresy_n and_o bring_v in_o diverse_a example_n only_o the_o proclaimer_n make_v no_o argument_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d for_o that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o people_n receive_v his_o bare_a proclamation_n what_o argument_n he_o use_v let_v the_o world_n judge_v &_o the_o papist_n if_o they_o can_v study_v to_o answer_v he_o but_o oecolampadius_n he_o say_v have_v heap_v up_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o papist_n do_v grant_v &_o yet_o acknowledge_v his_o presence_n on_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o though_o his_o depart_n out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o presence_n in_o the_o world_n concern_v his_o bodily_a presence_n can_v stand_v together_o then_o he_o fly_v to_o his_o divine_a power_n by_o which_o he_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a in_o diverse_a place_n as_o well_o as_o do_v such_o and_o such_o miracle_n as_o he_o rehearse_v and_o wish_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o straight_o and_o cruel_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o to_o give_v it_o no_o great_a prerogative_n then_o unto_o any_o other_o body_n very_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v as_o great_a prerogative_n thereof_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v give_v it_o whereof_o we_o have_v understanding_n by_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o otherwise_o it_o be_v madness_n in_o we_o to_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o be_v liberal_a to_o he_o which_o give_v all_o thing_n and_o if_o we_o find_v as_o good_a authority_n for_o the_o ubiquity_n or_o plurality_n of_o place_v of_o his_o body_n as_o we_o find_v for_o the_o feed_v we_o thereby_o into_o eternal_a life_n we_o will_v as_o easy_o confess_v the_o one_o as_o we_o do_v the_o other_o but_o we_o find_v not_o in_o deed_n as_o m._n heskins_n say_v that_o he_o himself_o have_v give_v or_o will_v give_v his_o body_n that_o prerogative_n to_o be_v every_o where_o or_o in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o at_o once_o as_o for_o the_o possibility_n we_o extend_v it_o no_o further_o than_o his_o will._n we_o know_v he_o can_v do_v what_o soever_o he_o will._n and_o many_o thing_n we_o know_v he_o can_v do_v because_o he_o will_v not_o but_o m._n heskin_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o his_o will_n have_v nothing_o to_o bring_v but_o that_o which_o be_v all_o the_o controversy_n &_o which_o most_o impudent_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v prove_v both_o by_o scripture_n and_o doctor_n that_o christ_n have_v cause_v his_o body_n to_o be_v in_o diverse_a place_n at_o one_o time_n which_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o any_o doctor_n of_o antiquity_n ever_o do_v affirm_v in_o proper_a manner_n of_o speak_v otherwise_o in_o figurative_a speech_n we_o may_v true_o say_v we_o eat_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n when_o to_o speak_v proper_o and_o without_o figure_n we_o eat_v but_o the_o bread_n which_o to_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o seal_v of_o our_o spiritual_a nourishment_n which_o we_o receive_v of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n after_o a_o divine_a and_o unspeakable_a manner_n unto_o eternal_a life_n say_v rather_o lift_v we_o up_o into_o heaven_n then_o bring_v christ_n body_n into_o the_o earth_n master_n heskins_n say_v the_o scripture_n that_o say_v christ_n be_v in_o heaven_n speak_v without_o exclusive_n or_o exceptives_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o denial_n employ_v but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v also_o on_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o peter_n in_o the_o act_n 3._o affirm_v that_o christ_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o heaven_n which_o be_v mean_v of_o his_o humanity_n until_o the_o time_n of_o restore_v of_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o this_o a_o exclusion_n of_o all_o other_o place_n or_o being_n of_o his_o humanity_n when_o paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n colo._n 3._o will_v they_o to_o seek_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v above_o and_o where_o christ_n be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o set_v their_o mind_n on_o thing_n above_o and_o not_o on_o thing_n upon_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o the_o re●son_n because_o christ_n concern_v his_o humanity_n be_v above_o &_o not_o upon_o earth_n be_v not_o this_o a_o exclusive_a and_o exception_n when_o christ_n say_v not_o only_o i_o go_v to_o my_o father_n but_o also_o i_o leave_v the_o world_n joan._n 16._o which_o say_v the_o apostle_n confess_v to_o be_v plain_a and_o without_o all_o parable_n be_v not_o this_o a_o manifest_a exclusion_n of_o his_o bodily_a presence_n from_o the_o world_n so_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o ascension_n and_o abide_n in_o heaven_n concern_v his_o humane_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o ascend_v be_v a_o exclude_v and_o shut_v out_o and_o deny_v of_o all_o other_o place_n or_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n then_o to_o be_v in_o heaven_n only_o but_o now_o that_o he_o have_v thus_o tumble_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n he_o will_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o answer_v the_o objection_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o doctor_n and_o first_o shall_v be_v the_o say_n of_o augustine_n admetus_n dardanum_n ep_n 57_o which_o place_n contrary_a to_o he_o brag_v in_o the_o beginning_n he_o allege_v truncat_o &_o by_o half_a begin_v at_o the_o midst_n thereof_o but_o this_o place_n be_v in_o augustine_n et_fw-la sic_fw-la venturus_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la angelica_fw-la voce_fw-la testante_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la ire_n visus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la eadem_fw-la carnis_fw-la forma_fw-la atque_fw-la substantia_fw-la cvi_fw-la profectò_fw-la immortalitatem_fw-la dedit_fw-la naturam_fw-la non_fw-la abstulis_fw-la secundùm_fw-la hanc_fw-la formam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la putandus_fw-la ubique_fw-la diffusus_fw-la and_o he_o shall_v come_v even_o so_o as_o that_o voice_n of_o the_o angel_n do_v testify_v even_o as_o he_o be_v see_v to_o go_v into_o heaven_n that_o be_v in_o the_o same_o form_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o which_o true_o he_o have_v give_v immortality_n but_o he_o have_v not_o take_v the_o nature_n from_o it_o according_a to_o this_o form_n he_o be_v not_o think_v to_o be_v diffuse_v in_o all_o place_n all_o this_o have_v heskins_n leave_v out_o and_o begin_v thus_o cavendum_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la no_o ita_fw-la veritatem_fw-la astru●mu●_n hominis_fw-la ut_fw-la veritatem_fw-la corporis_fw-la auferamus_fw-la non_fw-fr est_fw-fr enim_fw-la consequens_fw-la ut_fw-la quod_fw-la no_n deo_fw-la est_fw-la ita_fw-la sit_fw-la ubique_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la for_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o affirm_v the_o deity_n of_o the_o man_n that_o we_o take_v away_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n for_o it_o be_v no_o consequent_a that_o that_o which_o be_v in_o god_n shall_v so_o be_v every_o where_o as_o god_n be_v note_v here_o that_o saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o only_o flat_o deny_v the_o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o also_o affirm_v that_o it_o retain_v still_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n which_o be_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o one_o only_a place_n again_o he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n jesus_n ubique_fw-la per_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la coelo_fw-la autem_fw-la per_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la homo_fw-la est_fw-la jesus_n by_o that_o he_o be_v god_n be_v every_o where_o by_o that_o he_o be_v man_n he_o be_v in_o heaven_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o wise_o master_n heskin_n will_v avoid_v this_o authority_n first_o he_o say_v that_o augustine_n in_o this_o epistle_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o these_o sentence_n make_v not_o against_o that_o matter_n but_o when_o augustine_n speak_v general_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o retain_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o body_n that_o it_o be_v not_o every_o where_o etc_n etc_n he_o do_v not_o except_o the_o sacrament_n although_o it_o be_v false_a that_o heskins_n say_v for_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o that_o epistle_n he_o have_v these_o word_n huius_fw-la corporis_fw-la caput_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la huius_fw-la corporis_fw-la unitas_fw-la nostro_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la commendatur_fw-la the_o head_n of_o this_o body_n be_v christ_n the_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n be_v commend_v in_o our_o sacrifice_n by_o sacrifice_n as_o master_n heskin_n will_v confess_v he_o mean_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o he_o forget_v not_o the_o sacrament_n in_o that_o epistle_n but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v make_v exception_n thereof_o if_o he_o have_v think_v good_a the_o second_o answer_n of_o master_n heskins_n be_v a_o bald_a distinction_n that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o many_o place_n two_o way_n the_o one_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o other_o by_o gift_n by_o nature_n he_o confess_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v in_o two_o place_n
but_o by_o gift_n it_o may_v be_v every_o where_o or_o in_o as_o many_o place_n as_o he_o will_v and_o then_o bring_v many_o example_n to_o show_v that_o christ_n body_n have_v many_o property_n by_o gift_n which_o it_o have_v not_o by_o nature_n and_o in_o this_o distinction_n he_o triumph_v out_o of_o measure_n but_o the_o lewd_a sophister_n will_v not_o see_v that_o saint_n augustine_n deny_v to_o christ_n body_n his_o imagine_a gift_n and_o affirm_v his_o deny_a nature_n to_o remain_v cui_fw-la say_v he_o profectò_fw-la immortalitatem_fw-la dedit_fw-la naturam_fw-la non_fw-la abstudit_fw-la to_o which_o flesh_n he_o have_v give_v immortality_n but_o not_o take_v away_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o do_v not_o augustine_n here_o plain_o deny_v the_o gift_n of_o ubiquity_n affirm_v the_o nature_n to_o remain_v concern_v the_o circum_fw-la scription_n of_o place_n you_o see_v this_o very_a place_n to_o overthrow_v his_o blind_a distinction_n now_o follow_v another_o place_n out_o of_o this_o epistle_n to_o dardanus_n in_o which_o he_o be_v such_o a_o impudent_a falsary_n as_o we_o have_v so_o often_o discover_v yet_o blush_v not_o to_o accuse_v oecolampadius_n for_o falsify_v of_o aug._n by_o a_o subtle_a addition_n spacia_fw-la locorum_fw-la tolle_fw-la corporibus_fw-la nusquaem_fw-la erunt_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la nusquam_fw-la erunt_fw-la nec_fw-la erunt_fw-la tolle_o ipsa_fw-la corpora_fw-la qualitatibus_fw-la corporum_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la ubi_fw-la fint_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la non_fw-la alibi_fw-la quàm_fw-la in_o caelum_fw-la corpore_fw-la fate●●r_fw-la christum_n take_v the_o space_n of_o place_n from_o body_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o where_o and_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v no_o where_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v at_o al._n take_v the_o same_o body_n from_o the_o quality_n of_o body_n and_o there_o shall_v no_o place_n be_v find_v where_o they_o may_v be_v &_o therefore_o we_o confess_v christ_n in_o body_n to_o be_v no_o where_o else_o but_o in_o heaven_n these_o last_o word_n &_o therefore_o we_o confess_v christ_n in_o body_n to_o be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o heaven_n as_o he_o say_v true_o they_o be_v not_o in_o augustine_n so_o he_o say_v false_o they_o be_v add_v by_o oecolampadius_n otherwise_o then_o as_o a_o conclusion_n of_o his_o own_o gather_v out_o of_o augustine_n word_n but_o he_o must_v have_v some_o cavil_n to_o shift_v of_o the_o matter_n for_o his_o answer_n be_v so_o impudent_a that_o i_o marvel_v the_o beast_n be_v not_o ashamed_a once_o to_o rehearse_v this_o objection_n which_o he_o can_v no_o more_o colourable_o avoid_v he_o say_v these_o word_n of_o augustine_n be_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o natural_a body_n upon_o the_o earth_n whereas_o the_o only_a purpose_n of_o augustine_n be_v to_o show_v the_o natural_a property_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o one_o place_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o other_o body_n either_o in_o heaven_n or_o in_o earth_n but_o because_o this_o old_a fool_n play_v the_o boy_n so_o kind_o let_v i_o pose_v he_o in_o his_o answer_n like_o a_o child_n speak_v augustine_n of_o all_o body_n or_o of_o some_o if_o of_o all_o then_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o of_o some_o then_o of_o particular_n follow_v nothing_o but_o speak_v he_o of_o all_o natural_a body_n of_o the_o earth_n then_o answer_v i_o whether_o christ_n body_n be_v upon_o the_o earth_n yes_o or_o else_o it_o can_v not_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n well_o admit_v it_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n be_v it_o a_o natural_a body_n or_o no_o take_v heed_n what_o you_o answer_v yea_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a body_n why_o then_o sir_n if_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o natural_a body_n upon_o earth_n and_o augustine_n speak_v of_o natural_a body_n upon_o earth_n than_o augustine_n speak_v of_o christ_n body_n also_o this_o childish_a kind_n of_o reason_v be_v good_a enough_o for_o such_o childish_a answer_n as_o he_o make_v to_o so_o grave_a authority_n but_o let_v we_o see_v another_o objection_n which_o be_v out_o of_o augustine_n also_o in_o joan._n tract_n 30._o sursum_fw-la est_fw-la domimus_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la hîc_fw-la &_o veritas_fw-la dominus_fw-la corpus_fw-la enim_fw-la domini_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la uno_fw-la loco_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la veritas_fw-la eius_fw-la ubique_fw-la diffusa_fw-la est_fw-la our_o lord_n be_v above_o hi●_z also_o he_o be_v here_o and_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o which_o he_o rise_v again_o can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n his_o truth_n be_v diffuse_v every_o where_o this_o place_n be_v corrupt_o cite_v by_o master_n heskin_n for_o he_o set_v it_o down_o thus_o sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la hîc_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la domini_fw-la his_o translation_n i_o will_v not_o deal_v with_o because_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n he_o answer_v that_o augustine_n say_v no_o more_o but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o one_o only_a place_n at_o one_o time_n if_o it_o please_v he_o a_o goodly_a say_n as_o though_o ever_o any_o man_n will_v think_v otherwise_o then_o that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o his_o body_n to_o be_v in_o one_o place_n at_o one_o time_n but_o that_o one_o place_n in_o these_o word_n be_v a_o exclusive_a of_o all_o other_o place_n if_o the_o opposition_n of_o one_o place_n and_o all_o other_o place_n will_v not_o serve_v at_o least_o wise_a let_v the_o canon_n law_n itself_o bear_v some_o sway_n with_o papist_n to_o expound_v it_o for_o in_o the_o decree_n de_fw-fr contract_n dist._n 2._o prima_fw-la quidem_fw-la thi●_n place_n of_o augustine_n be_v thus_o cite_v corpus_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la in_fw-la uno_fw-la loco_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la veritas_fw-la autem_fw-la eius_fw-la ubique_fw-la disfusa_fw-la est_fw-la for_o his_o body_n in_o which_o he_o rise_v again_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o one_o place_n but_o his_o truth_n be_v diffuse_v in_o all_o place_n by_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o augustine_n word_n potest_fw-la esse_fw-la uno_fw-la loco_fw-la assign_v his_o body_n to_o one_o only_a place_n now_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o more_o objection_n out_o of_o augustine_n or_o any_o other_o writer_n against_o the_o ubiquity_n of_o christ_n body_n he_o end_v with_o this_o conclude_v after_o his_o manner_n that_o faith_n must_v over_o rule_v reason_n which_o be_v true_a where_o god_n word_n have_v promise_v any_o thing_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v promise_v the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o faith_n where_o the_o word_n have_v not_o go_v before_o but_o leave_v the_o reader_n shall_v think_v m._n heskins_n have_v answer_v all_o objection_n out_o of_o augustine_n i_o think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o one_o or_o two_o more_o first_o in_o joan._n tract_n 31._o christus_fw-la homo_fw-la secundum_fw-la corpus_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la est_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr loco_fw-la migrat_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la alium_fw-la locum_fw-la venerit_fw-la in_fw-la eo_fw-la loco_fw-la unde_fw-la venit_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la autem_fw-la implet_fw-la omne_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la totu●_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la secundùm_fw-la spacia_fw-la tenetur_fw-la locis_fw-la etc_n etc_n christ_n the_o man_n according_a to_o his_o body_n be_v in_o a_o place_n &_o go_v from_o a_o place_n and_o when_o he_o be_v come_v unto_o another_o place_n he_o be_v not_o in_o that_o place_n from_o whence_o he_o come_v but_o god_n fill_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v whole_a in_o every_o place_n he_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o place_n according_a to_o space_n or_o distance_n and_o tr._n 50._o respondent_fw-la quem_fw-la tenebo_fw-la absentem_fw-la quomodo_n in_o coelum_fw-la maman_fw-mi mittam_fw-la ut_fw-la ibi_fw-la sedentem_fw-la teneam_fw-la fidem_fw-la mitte_fw-la &_o tenuisti_fw-la parent_n tuitenuerunt_fw-la carne_fw-la no_o tene_fw-la cord_n quoniam_fw-la christus_fw-la absens_fw-la etiam_fw-la presence_n est_fw-la nisi_fw-la praesens_fw-la esset_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la ipsit_fw-la toneri_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n sed_fw-la quoniam_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la ait_fw-la ecce_fw-la ego_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la sum_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la consumnationem_fw-la saeculi_fw-la &_o abijs_fw-la &_o his_fw-la est_fw-la &_o redijt_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la non_fw-la deseruit_fw-la corpus_fw-la enim_fw-la su●n_fw-la intulit_fw-la caelum_fw-la maiestatem_fw-la non_fw-la abstulis_fw-la mundo_fw-la they_o answer_v mean_v the_o unbelieve_a jew_n who_o shall_v i_o hold_v he_o that_o be_v absent_a how_o shall_v i_o send_v up_o my_o hand_n into_o heaven_n that_o i_o may_v hold_v he_o which_o sit_v there_o send_v up_o faith_n and_o thou_o have_v hold_v he_o thy_o parent_n hold_v he_o in_o flesh_n hold_v thou_o he_o in_o heart_n for_o christ_n be_v absent_a be_v also_o present_a for_o except_o he_o be_v present_a he_o can_v not_o be_v hold_v of_o ourselves_o but_o because_o it_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o
saint_n in_o heaven_n what_o the_o rest_n be_v he_o do_v not_o determine_v he_o mean_v silvester_n isodore_n innocentius_n betram_n durand_n holcot_n dunce_n etc_n etc_n which_o if_o they_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v ridiculous_a in_o defence_n of_o popery_n it_o be_v better_a man_n shall_v laugh_v at_o their_o folly_n then_o be_v still_o deceive_v with_o their_o error_n but_o whereas_o m._n hesk._n will_v set_v a_o player_n on_o a_o stage_n and_o a_o boy_n in_o the_o pa●●is_n to_o answer_v the_o bishop_n i_o ween_v it_o be_v more_o than_o the_o reverend_a m._n doctor_n heskin_n revest_v in_o doctoralibus_fw-la and_o enthronize_v in_o his_o doctor_n chair_n dare_v well_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o do_v that_o which_o follow_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v consume_v in_o cite_v and_o urge_v of_o the_o forename_a writer_n who_o authority_n we_o do_v not_o admit_v appeal_n always_o from_o the_o low_a house_n of_o puny_n burgess_n to_o the_o high_a house_n of_o ancient_a baron_n hesk._n the_o sixti_v chapter_n proceed_v in_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o text_n by_o theophylacte_n and_o paschasius_fw-la fulke_n although_o we_o may_v demur_v upon_o the_o understanding_n of_o those_o word_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi in_o 14._o matth._n that_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v transelementate_v into_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o flesh_n &_o blood_n yet_o consider_v the_o corrupt_a time_n in_o which_o he_o live_v his_o authority_n be_v not_o worth_a the_o strive_n for_o and_o whereas_o master_n heskin_n will_v make_v he_o so_o say_v no_o more_o than_o the_o old_a father_n hilar._n iren._n cyril_n chrysost._n etc_n etc_n see_v we_o have_v already_o consider_v their_o testimony_n it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o repeat_v they_o again_o in_o this_o place_n and_o as_o often_o as_o it_o please_v master_n heskin_n to_o abuse_v their_o name_n the_o one_o and_o sixti_v chapter_n continue_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o word_n by_o oecumenius_n and_o anselmus_fw-la hesk._n oecumenius_n say_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n too_o or_o fro_o but_o anselmus_fw-la go_v more_o round_o to_o the_o matter_n fulke_n as_o one_o that_o be_v the_o scholar_n of_o lanfrancus_fw-la which_o write_v against_o berengarius_fw-la nevertheless_o upon_o these_o word_n of_o he_o rise_v some_o other_o matter_n neque_fw-la eminet_fw-la for_o we_o do_v neither_o altogether_o exclude_v a_o figure_n from_o this_o sacrament_n nor_o admit_v a_o only_a figure_n this_o place_n m._n hesk._n will_v have_v to_o expound_v tertullia_n figure_n but_o we_o have_v show_v before_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v unto_o this_o he_o add_v augustine_n cite_v in_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o his_o work_n in_o these_o word_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o figure_n the_o truth_n while_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o that_o be_v the_o figure_n which_o be_v outward_o perceive_v de_fw-fr cons_n dist._n 2._o cap_n utrum_fw-la when_o these_o word_n be_v find_v in_o any_o work_n of_o s._n augustine_n we_o will_v make_v answer_n to_o they_o otherwise_o we_o may_v not_o receive_v they_o of_o the_o only_a credit_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n unless_o they_o have_v such_o meaning_n as_o the_o say_n of_o hilarius_n b._n of_o rome_n which_o follow_v corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la etc_n etc_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v take_v at_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o figure_n while_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v see_v outward_o and_o a_o truth_n while_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n inward_o be_v believe_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o this_o say_n to_o be_v plain_a enough_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o outward_a figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v inward_o receive_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n as_o gratian_n also_o report_v the_o word_n of_o the_o same_o hilary_n de_fw-fr cons._n dist._n 2._o vbi_fw-la pars_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la quantitas_fw-la visibilis_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la aestimanda_fw-la mysterio_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la the_o visible_a quantity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v in_o this_o mystery_n but_o the_o spiritual_a virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o m._n heskins_n proceed_v and_o by_o anselmus_fw-la authority_n he_o will_v avoid_v the_o trifle_a sophysticall_a argument_n make_v by_o master_n pilkinton_n in_o the_o open_a disputation_n hold_v in_o cambridge_n by_o like_a master_n heskins_n have_v not_o learn_v the_o solution_n at_o that_o time_n and_o therefore_o now_o he_o send_v it_o over_o the_o sea_n to_o he_o the_o argument_n be_v this_o christ_n take_v bread_n he_o bless_a bread_n he_o break_v bread_n wherefore_o he_o give_v bread_n to_o his_o disciple_n if_o he_o give_v bread_n than_o not_o his_o body_n m._n heskins_n say_v he_o so_o use_v the_o word_n as_o though_o by_o the_o act_n which_o the_o verb_n express_v nothing_o have_v be_v do_v yes_o m._n heskins_n he_o change_v the_o use_n but_o not_o the_o substance_n but_o by_o the_o like_a sophism_n say_v master_n heskin_n he_o may_v prove_v that_o he_o give_v no_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n for_o that_o he_o deliver_v which_o he_o take_v but_o he_o take_v bread_n no_o sacrament_n therefore_o he_o deliver_v bread_n no_o sacrament_n but_o by_o his_o patience_n this_o sophism_n of_o he_o be_v nothing_o like_o master_n pilkintons_n argument_n for_o in_o one_o proposition_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o substance_n in_o the_o other_o of_o another_o quality_n or_o affection_n beside_o the_o substance_n as_o in_o this_o example_n that_o which_o you_o buy_v in_o the_o shambles_n you_o have_v eat_v but_o you_o buy_v cow_n flesh_n therefore_o you_o have_v eat_v caulfe_n flesh_n every_o child_n see_v this_o follow_v not_o but_o if_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o substance_n in_o both_o alike_o it_o follow_v as_o thus_o that_o which_o you_o buy_v in_o the_o market_n you_o have_v eat_v but_o you_o buy_v mutton_n therefore_o you_o have_v eat_v mutton_n upon_o the_o premise_n grant_v this_o argument_n follow_v of_o necessity_n and_o such_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o master_n pilkinton_n which_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o lovayne_n can_v not_o answer_v hesk._n the_o t●o_fw-la and_o sixti_v chapter_n abide_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o word_n by_o rupertus_n and_o nicholaus_fw-la methonen_fw-mi fulke_n in_o this_o whole_a chapter_n be_v nothing_o worth_a the_o read_n and_o much_o less_o the_o answer_v for_o he_o do_v nothing_o but_o cite_v and_o urge_v the_o say_n of_o these_o two_o late_a writer_n of_o who_o authority_n he_o know_v we_o make_v none_o account_v as_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o the_o ancient_a writer_n who_o he_o name_v their_o say_n have_v be_v already_o weigh_v and_o answer_v the_o three_o and_o sixti_v chapter_n tarry_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o word_n by_o innocentius_n &_o germanus_n hesk._n the_o authority_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o which_o call_v the_o lateran_n counsel_n fulk_n in_o which_o transubstantiation_n be_v first_o decree_v must_v needs_o be_v of_o great_a credit_n with_o we_o but_o germanus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o pope_n swear_a enemy_n i_o marvel_v why_o he_o be_v join_v with_o the_o pope_n for_o that_o he_o say_v be_v small_a to_o m._n heskins_n purpose_n and_o therefore_o he_o help_v he_o out_o with_o damascen_n yet_o he_o confess_v his_o say_n subject_a to_o cavil_v for_o where_o he_o write_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n dominus_fw-la &_o conspicitur_fw-la etc_n etc_n our_o lord_n be_v both_o see_v and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v touch_v by_o the_o fearful_a and_o holy_a mystery_n etc_n etc_n and_o so_o say_v chrysostom_n thou_o see_v he_o thou_o touch_v he_o thou_o eat_v he_o etc_n etc_n master_n heskins_n say_v we_o reason_n and_o so_o we_o may_v in_o deed_n that_o we_o eat_v he_o as_o we_o see_v he_o which_o be_v only_o by_o faith_n but_o m._n heskin_n with_o profound_a logic_n will_v answer_v this_o argument_n that_o a_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v see_v when_o the_o outward_a form_n be_v see_v and_o so_o christ_n be_v see_v when_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v but_o by_o his_o favour_n a_o thing_n be_v see_v when_o the_o proper_a form_n &_o accident_n thereof_o be_v see_v but_o the_o form_n or_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o the_o proper_a form_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o see_v by_o they_o no_o more_o than_o i_o see_v a_o man_n when_o i_o see_v the_o house_n wherein_o he_o be_v or_o then_o i_o see_v a_o knife_n when_o i_o see_v the_o close_a case_n or_o sheathe_v wherein_o it_o be_v and_o
suppress_v the_o rest_n for_o very_a shame_n they_o make_v so_o much_o against_o he_o sure_o in_o all_o reasonable_a man_n conscience_n what_o so_o ever_o he_o leave_v out_o of_o this_o place_n he_o leave_v the_o advantage_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n and_o no_o title_n against_o he_o but_o let_v we_o see_v here_o what_o master_n heskin_n a_o man_n of_o invention_n pass_v sinon_n the_o gręcian_n have_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o place_n plain_o teach_v the_o first_o be_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o that_o he_o so_o reverent_o call_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o portion_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o the_o other_o he_o call_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o holy_a blood_n for_o the_o spiritual_a blood_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o external_a or_o material_a vessel_n no_o sir_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o natural_a blood_n be_v whereof_o he_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n immediate_o before_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n for_o his_o natural_a body_n be_v not_o break_v into_o portion_n but_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v a_o sacrament_n thereof_o be_v break_v and_o thereby_o be_v show_v what_o wicked_a man_n receive_v both_o in_o this_o say_n of_o gelasius_n &_o in_o the_o other_o of_o leo_n not_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v be_v receive_v in_o portion_n but_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o to_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o worthy_o &_o be_v consecrate_v to_o that_o use_n that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o show_v sacrament_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o very_a thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n the_o second_o thing_n that_o he_o teach_v say_v m._n hes._n be_v that_o he_o call_v not_o these_o two_o kind_n sacramentum_fw-la a_o sacrament_n but_o sacramenta_fw-la sacrament_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n signify_v thereby_o that_o each_o of_o they_o be_v a_o whole_a sacrament_n oh_o new_a divinity_n they_o you_o papist_n have_v eight_o sacrament_n but_o be_v you_o such_o a_o prudent_a gatherer_n m._n have_v it_o appear_v you_o will_v lease_v none_o advantage_n for_o the_o take_n up_o i_o commend_v you_o but_o for_o all_o that_o do_v not_o your_o author_n leo_n call_v both_o kind_n sacramentum_fw-la a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o be_v more_o for_o it_o be_v too_o too_o childish_a to_o reason_n of_o the_o singular_a number_n do_v not_o gelasius_n call_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n vnum_fw-la idémque_fw-la mysterium_fw-la one_o and_o the_o same_o mystery_n and_o when_o he_o use_v the_o plural_a number_n the_o ground_n of_o your_o achillean_a argument_n do_v he_o not_o say_v integra_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la percipiant_fw-la aut_fw-la ab_fw-la integris_fw-la arceantur_fw-la let_v they_o take_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o else_o let_v they_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o whole_a signify_v that_o they_o which_o take_v the_o bread_n only_o take_v but_o half_a the_o sacrament_n and_o none_o take_v the_o whole_a but_o they_o that_o take_v the_o cup_n also_o but_o now_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o have_v receive_v in_o one_o kind_n he_o say_v that_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o priest_n deliver_v they_o of_o the_o sacrament_n wrap_v in_o fine_a linen_n clothes_n to_o carry_v home_o with_o they_o and_o to_o receive_v it_o secret_o by_o themselves_o and_o this_o can_v be_v none_o other_o but_o the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o fo●ne_n of_o bread_n admit_v it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o carry_v home_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o but_o they_o may_v as_o well_o carry_v the_o wine_n in_o a_o fair_a pot_n as_o they_o carry_v the_o bread_n in_o a_o fair_a cloth_n and_o although_o tertullian_n write_v to_o his_o wife_n name_n bread_n only_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v but_o that_o he_o comprehend_v the_o cup_n also_o the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n be_v before_o rehearse_v and_o answer_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 24._o &_o 27._o next_o be_v bring_v in_o basil._n episto_n ad_fw-la caesareant_n patriciam_fw-la illud_fw-la autem_fw-la etc_n etc_n as_o for_o that_o to_o be_v a_o grievous_a thing_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n any_o man_n to_o be_v enforce_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o priest_n or_o deacon_n not_o be_v present_a it_o be_v more_o than_o need_v to_o prove_v for_o because_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v by_o a_o long_a custom_n and_o by_o the_o very_a use_n of_o thing_n establish_v for_o all_o they_o that_o in_o the_o wilderness_n lead_v a_o solitary_a life_n where_o there_o be_v no_o priest_n keep_v the_o communion_n at_o home_n communicate_v of_o themselves_o but_o in_o alexandria_n and_o ae●ypt_n every_o one_o of_o the_o people_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v the_o communion_n in_o their_o own_o house_n for_o when_o the_o priest_n do_v consecrate_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o distribute_v it_o we_o must_v well_o believe_v to_o participate_v and_o receive_v it_o for_o in_o the_o church_n the_o priest_n give_v part_n and_o he_o that_o take_v it_o receive_v it_o with_o all_o liberty_n and_o put_v it_o to_o his_o mouth_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o virtue_n whether_o a_o man_n take_v one_o part_n of_o the_o priest_n or_o many_o part_n together_o of_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n which_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n basil_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o his_o work_n i_o have_v speak_v before_o sufficient_o as_o also_o of_o the_o reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n gather_v out_o of_o it_o in_o the_o first_o book_n cap._n 27._o but_o for_o the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n i_o see_v nothing_o that_o he_o say_v save_v that_o master_n heskins_n gather_v that_o such_o small_a portion_n of_o wine_n will_v not_o be_v keep_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n convenient_o in_o their_o own_o kind_n such_o long_a time_n as_o they_o be_v force_v to_o reserve_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o else_o where_o but_o i_o answer_v he_o that_o such_o strong_a wine_n as_o they_o have_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n will_v be_v keep_v long_o from_o sour_v than_o the_o bread_n will_v be_v from_o mould_v and_o therefore_o his_o gather_n be_v altogether_o fond_a &_o ridiculous_a but_o now_o you_o shall_v hear_v a_o more_o plain_a testimoine_n for_o this_o receipt_n under_o one_o kind_n if_o you_o will_v hearken_v to_o s._n cyprian_n he_o be_v cite_v in_o sermon_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la a_o long_a say_n &_o to_o little_a yea_o to_o no_o purpose_n at_o all_o praesente_fw-la ac_fw-la testae_fw-la meipso_fw-la etc_n etc_n hear_v what_o come_v to_o pass_v myself_o be_v present_a and_o witness_v the_o parent_n of_o a_o child_n fly_v by_o chance_n while_o for_o fear_n they_o take_v no_o good_a advisement_n leave_v their_o young_a daughter_n under_o the_o cherish_n of_o a_o nurse_n the_o nurse_n bring_v she_o so_o leave_v unto_o the_o magistrate_n they_o before_o a_o idol_n where_o the_o people_n be_v gather_v because_o for_o her_o age_n she_o can_v yet_o eat_v no_o flesh_n give_v unto_o her_o bread_n mix_v with_o wine_n which_o remain_v also_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o they_o that_o perish_v afterward_o the_o mother_n receive_v her_o daughter_n but_o the_o little_a maid_n can_v no_o more_o speak_v and_o declare_v the_o offence_n that_o be_v commit_v then_o understand_v it_o before_o and_o forbid_v it_o through_o ignorance_n therefore_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o her_o mother_n bring_v she_o in_o with_o she_o while_o we_o be_v sacrifice_v but_o true_o the_o girl_n be_v among_o the_o saint_n not_o abide_v our_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n sometime_o be_v constrain_v to_o cry_v out_o sometime_o with_o vehement_a grief_n of_o mind_n be_v toss_v here_o and_o there_o even_o as_o though_o a_o tormentor_n compel_v she_o the_o ignorant_a soul_n by_o such_o token_n as_o she_o can_v acknowledge_v the_o conscience_n of_o her_o fact_n in_o those_o young_a and_o tender_a year_n but_o after_o the_o solemnity_n be_v accomplish_v the_o deacon_n begin_v to_o offer_v the_o cup_n to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a and_o when_o the_o rest_n have_v receive_v and_o her_o place_n be_v next_o the_o little_a one_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o god_n majesty_n turn_v away_o her_o face_n press_v her_o mouth_n with_o her_o lip_n stop_v refuse_v the_o cup_n yet_o the_o deacon_n persist_v and_o though_o it_o be_v against_o her_o will_n pour_v in_o somewhat_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cup_n then_o follow_v belch_a and_o vomit_n in_o a_o body_n and_o a_o mouth_n that_o be_v defile_v the_o eucharistie_n
can_v not_o remain_v the_o drink_n sanctify_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n break_v out_o of_o her_o pollute_a bowel_n etc_n etc_n out_o of_o this_o history_n master_n heskins_n gather_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o sacrament_n in_o that_o time_n be_v minister_v to_o infant_n which_o be_v in_o deed_n a_o great_a abuse_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n second_o that_o this_o child_n receive_v only_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v false_a for_o though_o she_o be_v not_o so_o trouble_v at_o the_o receipt_n of_o the_o bread_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o she_o receive_v no_o bread_n but_o contrariwise_o cyprian_n say_v the_o eucharist_n by_o which_o word_n the_o father_n always_o understand_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n can_v not_o remain_v in_o her_o body_n and_o whereas_o he_o reason_v foolish_o that_o if_o she_o have_v receive_v the_o bread_n she_o shall_v like_v wise_a have_v be_v trouble_v he_o must_v understand_v that_o when_o god_n work_v a_o miracle_n he_o take_v time_n and_o occasion_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o it_o be_v like_a he_o will_v not_o discover_v her_o pollution_n that_o come_v by_o bread_n and_o wine_n before_o she_o have_v receive_v both_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o the_o sacrament_n if_o i_o shall_v urge_v upon_o this_o place_n as_o the_o school_n man_n do_v whether_o this_o that_o be_v vomit_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o it_o or_o what_o be_v do_v with_o it_o in_o this_o story_n i_o shall_v trouble_v he_o more_o than_o he_o can_v easy_o answer_v another_o tale_n he_o tell_v out_o of_o sozomenus_n eccl._n hist._n lib._n 8._o cap._n 5._o joanne_v constantinopolitanum_n etc_n etc_n when_o john_n chrysostom_n do_v very_o well_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n a_o certain_a man_n of_o the_o macedonian_a heresy_n have_v a_o wife_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n when_o this_o man_n have_v hear_v john_n teach_v what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o god_n he_o praise_v his_o doctrine_n and_o exhort_v his_o wife_n to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o he_o but_o when_o she_o do_v more_o obey_v the_o word_n of_o noble_a woman_n than_o his_o conversation_n and_o after_o many_o admonition_n her_o husband_n have_v profit_v nothing_o except_o quoth_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o companion_n with_o i_o in_o divine_a matter_n thou_o shall_v not_o be_v hereafter_o a_o partaker_n of_o live_v with_o i_o when_o the_o woman_n hear_v this_o &_o promise_v her_o consent_n dissemble_o she_o communicate_v the_o matter_n with_o a_o certain_a maid_n servant_n which_o she_o judge_v to_o be_v trusty_a unto_o she_o and_o use_v her_o service_n to_o deceive_v her_o husband_n and_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o mystery_n they_o that_o be_v receive_v to_o they_o know_v what_o i_o say_v she_o keep_v that_o she_o have_v receive_v fall_v down_o as_o though_o she_o will_v pray_v her_o maid_n stand_v by_o give_v she_o privy_o that_o which_o she_o bring_v in_o her_o hand_n with_o she_o which_o thing_n when_o it_o be_v put_v to_o her_o tooth_n it_o congeal_v into_o a_o stone_n the_o woman_n be_v astony_a fear_v lest_o any_o evil_a shall_v happen_v to_o she_o for_o that_o thing_n which_o come_v to_o pass_v from_o god_n make_v haste_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o betray_v herself_o show_v the_o stone_n have_v yet_o upon_o it_o the_o mark_n of_o her_o bit_n and_o show_v a_o unknown_a matter_n and_o a_o wonderful_a colour_n and_o also_o desire_v pardon_n with_o tear_n promise_v that_o she_o will_v agree_v with_o her_o husband_n and_o if_o this_o matter_n seem_v to_o any_o man_n to_o be_v incredible_a this_o stone_n be_v a_o witness_n which_o be_v keep_v to_o this_o day_n among_o the_o jewel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n if_o this_o story_n be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n yet_o prove_v it_o not_o that_o the_o communion_n be_v minister_v in_o bread_n only_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o will_v receive_v the_o cup_n although_o i_o wot_v not_o what_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o stone_n before_o the_o time_n come_v she_o shall_v receive_v the_o cup_n if_o m._n heskins_n will_v urge_v she_o can_v not_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o convey_v into_o her_o mouth_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o wine_n i_o answer_v she_o may_v easy_o counterfeit_v the_o drink_n by_o kiss_v the_o cup_n and_o so_o let_v it_o pass_v from_o she_o without_o taste_v thereof_o wherefore_o this_o be_v but_o a_o blind_a and_o unreasonable_a conjecture_n of_o master_n heskin_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v in_o one_o kind_n because_o she_o that_o have_v dissemble_v in_o the_o receipt_n of_o one_o kind_n be_v punish_v with_o deprivation_n from_o both_o kind_n the_o last_o reason_n he_o use_v be_v that_o it_o be_v testify_v by_o learned_a man_n that_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v under_o one_o kind_n which_o be_v use_v in_o all_o the_o latin_a church_n upon_o good_a friday_n on_o which_o day_n the_o priest_n receive_v the_o host_n consecrate_v upon_o maundy_n thursday_n have_v be_v so_o use_v from_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o what_o learned_a man_n they_o be_v except_o such_o as_o himself_o and_o what_o proof_n they_o have_v of_o this_o usage_n he_o say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o half_a a_o word_n the_o whole_a matter_n stand_v upon_o his_o own_o credit_n but_o if_o he_o and_o all_o the_o learned_a of_o that_o side_n shall_v fast_o from_o good_a friday_n until_o they_o have_v show_v proof_n of_o such_o a_o use_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n not_o as_o they_o use_v to_o fast_o in_o lent_n but_o from_o all_o manner_n of_o nourishment_n there_o will_v not_o one_o learned_a papist_n be_v leave_v alive_a on_o gang_z monday_n to_o show_v what_o proof_n they_o have_v find_v thou_o have_v see_v reader_n what_o his_o reason_n and_o authority_n be_v judge_v of_o the_o answer_n according_a to_o thy_o discretion_n ¶_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o book_n the_o three_o book_n of_o master_n heskins_n parliament_n repeal_v by_o w._n fulke_n hesk._n the_o first_o chapter_n enter_v by_o preface_n into_o the_o first_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n that_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n and_o expound_v it_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n tthe_o preface_n be_v out_o of_o didymus_n that_o divine_a matter_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o reverence_n fulk_n and_o consider_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o hierome_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o doubt_n recourse_n must_v be_v have_v by_o irenęus_a his_o advice_n unto_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v conversant_a in_o so_o much_o that_o irenaeus_n say_v libro_fw-la 3._o cap._n 4._o quid_fw-la autem_fw-la etc_n etc_n and_o what_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v we_o no_o write_n ought_v we_o not_o to_o have_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o they_o to_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v the_o church_n whereupon_o master_n heskins_n gather_v that_o not_o only_o for_o matter_n contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o for_o tradition_n unwritten_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v but_o he_o go_v far_o from_o irenaeus_n mind_n who_o confute_v the_o heretic_n both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n who_o tradition_n must_v have_v be_v all_o our_o institution_n if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o scripture_n but_o see_v that_o scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n by_o his_o gracious_a providence_n be_v leave_v unto_o we_o all_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o they_o &_o that_o be_v twice_o prove_v after_o irenaeus_n mind_n which_o be_v prove_v both_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o the_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a of_o themselves_o 2._o tim._n 3._o and_o no_o tradition_n or_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v which_o be_v repugnant_a or_o contrary_a unto_o they_o the_o text_n of_o saint_n paul_n that_o he_o speak_v be_v write_v 1._o cor._n 10._o brethren_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o ignorant_a that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v under_o the_o cloud_n and_o all_o pass_v through_o the_o sea_n and_o be_v all_o baptise_a by_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o do_v all_o eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o do_v all_o drink_n the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n for_o they_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o follow_v they_o and_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o master_n heskin_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o the_o same_o spiritual_a drink_n translate_v one_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o one_o spiritual_a drink_n as_o though_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o the_o father_n do_v all_o eat_v &_o drink_v of_o one_o spiritual_a kind_n
mean_v of_o the_o stream_n and_o river_n of_o water_n which_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o rock_n follow_v they_o all_o along_o their_o journey_n in_o the_o wilderness_n yet_o if_o we_o understand_v it_o as_o he_o do_v of_o christ_n who_o rather_o go_v before_o they_o then_o follow_v they_o it_o prove_v not_o that_o the_o material_a rock_n be_v not_o call_v the_o spiritual_a rock_n for_o in_o sacrament_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o sign_n often_o time_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o thing_n signify_v &_o wrought_v by_o they_o as_o baptism_n be_v call_v regeneration_n the_o pascall_n lamb_n the_o pass_v over_o so_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n follow_v they_o and_o be_v christ_n but_o he_o will_v feign_v father_n his_o monstrous_a absurdity_n upon_o chrysostom_n 1._o cor._n 10._o cum_fw-la dixisset_fw-la etc_n etc_n when_o he_o have_v say_v that_o they_o drink_v spiritual_a drink_n he_o add_v for_o they_o drink_v of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n which_o follow_v they_o and_o join_v to_o it_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n for_o not_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o rock_n say_v he_o flow_v out_o the_o water_n for_o than_o it_o will_v have_v flow_v out_o before_o that_o time_n but_o a_o certain_a other_o spiritual_a rock_n wrought_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v present_a every_o where_o do_v all_o the_o miracle_n therefore_o he_o say_v follow_v they_o in_o these_o word_n chrysostom_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v that_o be_v the_o material_a rock_n and_o christ_n who_o because_o it_o represent_v it_o be_v call_v a_o spiritual_a rock_n as_o manna_n be_v a_o corporal_a food_n be_v call_v spiritual_a meat_n because_o it_o represent_v christ_n flesh_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a meat_n of_o our_o mind_n otherwise_o that_o the_o material_a rock_n be_v not_o call_v the_o spiritual_a rock_n chrysostom_n say_v not_o but_o saint_n augustine_n as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o affirm_v plain_o that_o which_o master_n heskins_n deny_v impudent_o proceed_v in_o his_o confutation_n of_o oecolampadius_n his_o principle_n that_o figure_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o they_o be_v figure_n as_o the_o fiery_a tongue_n the_o dove_n and_o the_o breathe_n of_o christ_n upon_o his_o apostle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o john_n baptist_n of_o helias_n he_o deny_v that_o any_o of_o these_o example_n do_v prove_v it_o for_o that_o neither_o any_o of_o these_o be_v call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o john_n call_v helias_n but_o he_o be_v foul_o beguile_v for_o although_o he_o quarrel_v at_o the_o adverb_n veluti_fw-la as_o it_o be_v fiery_a allege_v chrysostom_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o natural_a fire_n or_o wind_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o be_v that_o visible_a form_n call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o both_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n and_o in_o the_o eleven_o it_o be_v plain_a he_o sit_v upon_o every_o one_o of_o they_o if_o master_n heskin_n be_v pose_v as_o boy_n be_v in_o the_o school_n who_o or_o what_o sit_v he_o may_v not_o say_v the_o fiery_a tongue_n which_o be_v the_o plural_a number_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o and_o act_n 11._o peter_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v upon_o they_o even_o as_o upon_o we_o at_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v those_o visible_a sign_n of_o his_o invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a presence_n and_o whereas_o he_o cavil_v that_o the_o dove_n be_v not_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o ask_v he_o how_o can_v john_n say_v he_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v invisible_a but_o that_o he_o see_v the_o bodily_a shape_n of_o a_o dove_n which_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o he_o and_o as_o for_o the_o breathe_n of_o christ_n to_o signify_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o be_v so_o call_v how_o can_v the_o apostle_n understand_v it_o otherwise_o at_o that_o time_n when_o give_v they_o his_o breath_n he_o say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n then_o when_o he_o give_v they_o bread_n and_o say_v receive_v this_o it_o be_v my_o body_n for_o in_o both_o by_o a_o outward_a and_o visible_a sacrament_n he_o testify_v what_o he_o do_v give_v they_o in_o deed_n no_o more_o turn_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o natural_a body_n than_o his_o breath_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v most_o intolerable_a impudence_n that_o he_o deny_v john_n baptist_n to_o be_v helias_n that_o be_v prophesy_v by_o malachi_n affirm_v that_o the_o prophecy_n speak_v of_o the_o come_n of_o helias_n before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n which_o shall_v be_v to_o judgement_n say_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o assertive_o say_v that_o john_n be_v helias_n but_o if_o you_o will_v so_o take_v it_o this_o be_v he_o but_o to_o knock_v his_o blockish_a ignorance_n or_o rather_o serpentine_a malice_n in_o the_o head_n the_o angel_n in_o luk._n 1._o do_v assertive_o apply_v that_o prophecy_n to_o john_n baptist_n say_v he_o shall_v go_v before_o he_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o helias_n to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n unto_o the_o child_n which_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o math._n 17._o and_o mark_v the_o 9_o do_v assertive_o say_v that_o helias_n be_v already_o come_v according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n and_o his_o disciple_n understand_v that_o he_o speak_v to_o they_o of_o john_n the_o baptist._n what_o a_o shameless_a beast_n be_v this_o heskin_n to_o reason_n against_o so_o manifest_a a_o truth_n to_o maintain_v so_o false_a a_o error_n but_o we_o must_v answer_v his_o reason_n although_o no_o argument_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v against_o the_o express_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n first_o he_o say_v that_o prophecy_n can_v be_v expound_v of_o the_o first_o come_v of_o christ_n because_o he_o say_v helias_n shall_v come_v before_o the_o great_a and_o fearful_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n whereas_o the_o first_o come_v of_o christ_n be_v not_o fearful_a but_o peaceable_a not_o to_o judge_v but_o to_o save_v but_o he_o will_v not_o understand_v that_o christ_n come_n as_o it_o be_v most_o comfortable_a to_o the_o penitent_a sinner_n so_o most_o terrible_a to_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o obstinate_a wicked_a man_n witness_n john_n baptist_n himself_o math._n 3._o from_o the_o seven_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o twelve_o what_o shall_v i_o spend_v time_n in_o so_o clear_a a_o matter_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o euthymius_n and_o chrysostom_n which_o if_o they_o go_v against_o the_o plain_a authority_n of_o christ_n who_o will_v receive_v they_o although_o neither_o of_o they_o both_o in_o the_o place_n by_o he_o cite_v affirm_v that_o he_o say_v for_o euthymius_n in_o 11._o math._n si_fw-mi vultis_fw-la recipere_fw-la quod_fw-la suturum_fw-la esse_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la sive_fw-la suscipere_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la rebus_fw-la animuni_fw-la advertere_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la helias_n qui_fw-la venturus_fw-la erat_fw-la utpote_fw-la ipsum_fw-la illius_fw-la ministerium_fw-la perficiens_fw-la if_o you_o will_v receive_v that_o which_o be_v say_v shall_v be_v of_o this_o time_n or_o if_o you_o will_v give_v your_o mind_n to_o mark_v the_o thing_n he_o be_v helias_n which_o be_v to_o come_v as_o one_o perform_v his_o ministry_n which_o master_n heskins_n have_v falsify_v by_o translate_n thus_o if_o you_o will_v receive_v that_o that_o be_v speak_v to_o be_v do_v hereafter_o to_o be_v of_o this_o present_a time_n and_o although_o euthymius_n do_v hold_v that_o helias_n shall_v come_v before_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n yet_o do_v he_o affirm_v that_o john_n be_v call_v helias_n for_o similitude_n of_o office_n sicut_fw-la primus_fw-la helias_n secundus_fw-la praecursor_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ita_fw-la sanè_fw-la &_o primus_fw-la praecursor_fw-la secundus_fw-la helias_n appellatur_fw-la propter_fw-la simile_n ministerium_fw-la as_o the_o first_o helias_n be_v call_v the_o second_o forerunner_n so_o the_o second_o forerunner_n be_v call_v the_o first_o helias_n by_o reason_n of_o like_a ministry_n the_o place_n of_o chrysostom_n although_o either_o the_o word_n go_v immediate_o before_o or_o come_v after_o do_v plain_o express_v his_o mind_n which_o master_n heskins_n have_v fraudulent_o conceal_v yet_o as_o it_o be_v cite_v by_o he_o it_o make_v nothing_o for_o he_o but_o against_o he_o i_o will_v only_o rehearse_v the_o place_n and_o leave_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o reader_n rectè_fw-la apposuit_fw-la etc_n etc_n he_o have_v well_o add_v if_o you_o will_v receive_v it_o i_o come_v not_o to_o compel_v any_o man_n that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o require_v a_o thankful_a mind_n of_o all_o man_n and_o he_o signify_v that_o john_n be_v helias_n and_o helias_n be_v john_n
down_o from_o heaven_n to_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o they_o that_o do_v receive_v he_o in_o all_o age_n past_a and_o to_o come_v hesk._n the_o seven_o chapter_n proceed_v to_o declare_v the_o same_o by_o saint_n hierome_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n fulk_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n master_n heskins_n marvel_v that_o we_o who_o he_o count_v the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n will_v leave_v a_o doctrine_n so_o universal_o teach_v and_o receive_v as_o though_o he_o have_v prove_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v such_o compare_v the_o protestant_n to_o esope_n dog_n that_o snatch_v for_o a_o shadow_n lose_v the_o bone_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n nevertheless_o he_o will_v proceed_v on_o his_o matter_n if_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n to_o reclaim_v we_o and_o first_o he_o will_v choke_v we_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o saint_n hieronyme_n in_o 1._o cor._n 10._o expound_v that_o say_n they_o do_v eat_v the_o same_o spiritual_a meat_n etc_n etc_n manna_n figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la suis_fw-la manna_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v very_o true_a we_o never_o say_v the_o contrary_a but_o the_o same_o hierome_n in_o the_o same_o place_n upon_o that_o say_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n say_v that_o the_o rock_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n which_o master_n heskin_n utter_o deny_v quia_fw-la christus_fw-la erat_fw-la postmodum_fw-la sequnturus_fw-la cvius_fw-la figuram_fw-la tunc_fw-la petra_n gerebat_fw-la idco_fw-la pulchrè_fw-la dixit_fw-la consequent_a eos_fw-la petra_n because_o christ_n be_v afterward_o to_o follow_v of_o who_o the_o rock_n be_v a_o figure_n therefore_o he_o say_v very_o fit_o of_o the_o rock_n that_o follow_v they_o by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o by_o his_o judgement_n they_o drink_v of_o christ_n blood_n who_o be_v to_o come_v and_o consequent_o do_v eat_v his_o body_n whereof_o manna_n be_v a_o figure_n but_o it_o follow_v after_o in_o hieronyme_n which_o master_n heskins_n rehearse_v at_o large_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n omnia_fw-la enim_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la etc_n etc_n for_o all_o thing_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v do_v in_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o a_o figure_n now_o among_o we_o be_v celebrate_v in_o truth_n for_o even_o as_o they_o by_o moses_n be_v deliver_v out_o of_o egypt_n so_o be_v we_o by_o every_o priest_n or_o teacher_n deliver_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o be_v make_v christian_n we_o be_v lead_v through_o the_o wilderness_n that_o by_o exercise_n of_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n and_o abstinence_n we_o may_v forget_v the_o pleasure_n of_o egypt_n so_o that_o we_o know_v not_o to_o go_v back_o again_o into_o the_o world_n but_o when_o we_o pass_v the_o sea_n of_o baptism_n the_o devil_n be_v drown_v for_o our_o sake_n with_o all_o his_o army_n even_o as_o pharaoh_n be_v then_o we_o be_v feed_v with_o manna_n and_o receive_v drink_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n also_o the_o clearness_n of_o knowledge_n as_o a_o pillar_n of_o fire_n be_v show_v in_o the_o night_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o the_o heat_n of_o tribulation_n we_o be_v cover_v with_o the_o cloud_n of_o divine_a consolation_n in_o these_o word_n master_n heskins_n note_v two_o thing_n the_o application_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o figure_n and_o the_o drink_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o first_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o make_v their_o temporal_a benefit_n figure_n of_o our_o spiritual_a benefit_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n he_o use_v the_o term_n of_o figure_n and_o truth_n for_o otherwise_o he_o confess_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v true_o do_v among_o they_o and_o in_o a_o figure_n be_v the_o same_o that_o we_o be_v immediate_o before_o these_o word_n before_o rehearse_v by_o master_n heskin_n ipsis_fw-la verè_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o figura_fw-la erant_fw-la nostra_fw-la ut_fw-la ●imeamus_fw-la talia_fw-la agere_fw-la ne_fw-la talia_fw-la incurramus_fw-la those_o thing_n be_v true_o do_v unto_o they_o which_o in_o figure_n be_v we_o that_o we_o may_v fear_v to_o do_v such_o thing_n lest_o we_o incur_v such_o thing_n as_o for_o the_o drink_n flow_v out_o of_o his_o side_n we_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v show_v a_o hundred_o time_n receive_v after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n but_o master_n heskins_n reason_v witty_o as_o he_o think_v when_o he_o say_v as_o the_o jew_n do_v very_o eat_v manna_n so_o we_o do_v very_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o he_o mark_v not_o how_o hieronyme_n say_v we_o be_v feed_v with_o manna_n and_o we_o receive_v drink_v flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ._n whereupon_o i_o will_v infer_v as_o we_o be_v feed_v with_o manna_n so_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o be_v not_o feed_v with_o manna_n corporal_o but_o spiritual_o so_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o corporal_o but_o spiritual_o after_o this_o lest_o we_o shall_v doubt_v of_o this_o authority_n as_o false_o ascribe_v to_o hierome_n he_o return_v to_o hierome_n ad_fw-la hedibiam_fw-la qu._n 2._o which_o we_o can_v refuse_v to_o be_v s._n hierome_n but_o see_v that_o place_n be_v sufficient_o answer_v in_o the_o 53._o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o the_o repetition_n likewise_o the_o place_n of_o cyprian_a de_fw-fr coena_fw-la dom._n in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n likewise_o the_o other_o parcel_n of_o chrysostom_n he_o cite_v in_o matth._n 25._o hom._n 83._o in_o the_o 55._o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n the_o other_o name_v and_o not_o rehearse_v be_v oftentimes_o answer_v throughout_o the_o book_n and_o none_o of_o they_o all_o have_v any_o thing_n in_o they_o for_o his_o purpose_n now_o come_v cyrill_n in_o 6._o joan._n cap._n 19_o non_fw-la enim_fw-la prudenter_fw-la etc_n etc_n those_o thing_n that_o suffice_v but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n shall_v not_o wise_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n neither_o be_v that_o bread_n of_o god_n which_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v eat_v &_o be_v dead_a for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v from_o heaven_n and_o of_o god_n it_o have_v deliver_v the_o partaker_n of_o it_o from_o death_n but_o contrariwise_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v bread_n from_o heaven_n because_o it_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o here_o say_v m._n heskins_n be_v a_o brief_a and_o plain_a testimony_n that_o manna_n be_v a_o figure_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o thing_n figure_v this_o be_v grant_v but_o that_o cyrill_n mean_v to_o make_v it_o only_o a_o figure_n or_o a_o bare_a figure_n it_o be_v utter_o false_a as_z appeareth_z in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o same_o chapter_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 34._o manna_n verò_fw-la figura_fw-la quaedam_fw-la universalis_fw-la dei_fw-la liberalicatis_fw-la loco_fw-la arrhae_fw-la hominibus_fw-la concessa_fw-la manna_n true_o be_v a_o certain_a figure_n of_o the_o universal_a liberality_n of_o god_n grant_v to_o man_n in_o place_n of_o a_o pledge_n or_o earnest_n by_o these_o word_n you_o see_v that_o manna_n be_v not_o a_o bare_a figure_n but_o a_o earnest_n or_o assurance_n of_o all_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v sic_fw-la enim_fw-la planè_fw-la videbitur_fw-la quod_fw-la verum_fw-la manna_n christus_fw-la erat_fw-la qui_fw-la per_fw-la figuram_fw-la mann●_n priscis_fw-la illis_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la dabatur_fw-la for_o so_o it_o shall_v plain_o be_v see_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a manna_n which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o those_o ancient_a father_n by_o the_o figure_n of_o manna_n thus_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o manna_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n only_o of_o christ_n but_o that_o christ_n in_o deed_n be_v give_v by_o that_o figure_n as_o he_o be_v by_o our_o sacrament_n and_o so_o no_o corporal_a presence_n by_o his_o judgement_n nevertheless_o m._n heskins_n harp_v on_o his_o old_a string_n real_o and_o substantial_o and_o that_o by_o this_o authority_n of_o cyrillus_n cap._n 14._o in_o 6._o joan._n quoniam_fw-la etc_n etc_n because_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v join_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v natural_o life_n it_o be_v make_v able_a to_o give_v life_n when_o we_o eat_v it_o then_o have_v we_o life_n in_o we_o be_v join_v to_o he_o which_o be_v make_v life_n these_o word_n indeed_o do_v declare_v that_o whosoever_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v partaker_n of_o eternal_a life_n which_o m._n heskins_n will_v not_o grant_v but_o with_o his_o distinction_n spiritual_o therefore_o this_o place_n make_v nothing_o for_o he_o for_o cyril_n speak_v general_o so_o that_o no_o man_n
be_v all_o of_o one_o body_n which_o be_v true_a so_o we_o understand_v a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o conjunction_n by_o which_o we_o be_v not_o only_o join_v to_o christ_n as_o chrysostom_n say_v but_o also_o one_o to_o a_o other_o in_o one_o body_n second_o that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o eat_n whereof_o we_o be_v make_v one_o body_n and_o this_o also_o be_v true_a for_o we_o contend_v not_o for_o the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o eat_v the_o three_o note_n i_o think_v he_o make_v that_o by_o chrysostom_n judgement_n saint_n paul_n mean_v not_o material_a bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a and_o absurd_a by_o these_o two_o reason_n first_o if_o saint_n chrysostom_n by_o bread_n mean_v not_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o his_o question_n be_v nothing_o else_o in_o effect_n but_o what_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o he_o answer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v very_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a second_o that_o he_o mean_v material_a bread_n use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v manifest_a in_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v make_v of_o many_o grain_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n it_o not_o make_v of_o grain_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o mean_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n which_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o here_o master_n heskin_n as_o though_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o espy_v the_o matter_n insult_v upon_o he_o that_o translate_v this_o part_n of_o chrysostom_n which_o be_v franciscus_n aretinus_n who_o either_o of_o ignorance_n or_o of_o malice_n he_o charge_v to_o have_v falsify_v chrysostom_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o his_o word_n which_o according_a to_o the_o greek_a be_v what_o be_v the_o bread_n to_o have_v turn_v it_o what_o do_v the_o bread_n signify_v for_o my_o part_n although_o the_o greek_a copy_n common_o extant_a in_o print_n be_v not_o as_o he_o have_v translate_v it_o yet_o i_o suppose_v that_o he_o follow_v either_o some_o other_o copy_n that_o i_o have_v not_o see_v peradventure_o print_v peradventure_o write_v for_o undouted_o although_o he_o be_v ignorant_o or_o wilful_o deceive_v yet_o the_o sense_n of_o chrysostom_n word_n must_v needs_o be_v what_o do_v the_o bread_n signify_v which_o m._n heskins_n can_v not_o altogether_o dissemble_v but_o then_o he_o will_v have_v it_o not_o material_a bread_n but_o the_o word_n bread_n but_o how_o frivolous_a that_o be_v i_o have_v show_v before_o for_o this_o word_n bread_n be_v not_o make_v of_o corn_n but_o the_o material_a bread_n give_v in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v the_o other_o word_n he_o cite_v any_o thing_n help_v he_o non_fw-la enim_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la etc_n etc_n for_o he_o have_v not_o simple_o give_v his_o body_n but_o when_o the_o former_a nature_n of_o the_o flesh_n form_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n by_o sin_n be_v make_v mortal_a be_v forsake_v of_o life_n he_o bring_v in_o a_o other_o as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v lump_n or_o leaven_n that_o be_v his_o flesh_n in_o nature_n true_o the_o same_o but_o free_a from_o sin_n and_o full_a of_o life_n which_o he_o give_v to_o all_o that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o that_o be_v nourish_v with_o it_o and_o the_o first_o that_o be_v dead_a be_v cast_v away_o we_o may_v be_v join_v together_o by_o this_o live_n &_o immortal_a table_n loe_o say_v m._n heskins_n this_o be_v not_o a_o piece_n of_o dead_a bread_n but_o a_o live_n and_o immortal_a meat_n he_o dare_v not_o say_v table_n as_o chrysostom_n do_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o figure_n but_o be_v he_o so_o blind_a that_o he_o see_v not_o the_o partake_n and_o nourish_v of_o the_o new_a flesh_n to_o be_v such_o as_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o the_o old_a be_v which_o no_o man_n doubt_v to_o be_v spiritual_a but_o see_v he_o brag_v so_o much_o of_o chrysostom_n and_o be_v such_o a_o enemy_n to_o sign_n and_o figure_n let_v he_o hear_v what_o he_o write_v in_o math._n hom._n 83._o sed_fw-la ficut_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la eodem_fw-la h●c_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o beneficio_fw-la reliquit_fw-la memoriam_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la colligendo_fw-la &_o hinc_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la ora_fw-la frenando_fw-la nam_fw-la quando_fw-la dicunt_fw-la unde_fw-la patet_fw-la immolatum_fw-la christum_n fuisse_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la multa_fw-la mysteriae_fw-la haec_fw-la enim_fw-la adferentes_fw-la eorum_fw-la ora_fw-la consuimus_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la mortuus_fw-la jesus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la cvius_fw-la symbolum_fw-la ac_fw-la signum_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la est_fw-la vides_fw-la quancum_fw-la ei_fw-la studium_fw-la fuerit_fw-la ut_fw-la semper_fw-la memoria_fw-la tentamus_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la ipsum_fw-la mortuum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la but_o as_o in_o the_o old_a paschal_n ▪_o even_o likewise_o here_o in_o this_o benefit_n he_o have_v leave_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o mystery_n by_o gather_v and_o hereof_o bridle_v the_o mouth_n of_o heretic_n for_o when_o they_o say_v how_o be_v it_o know_v that_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v and_o many_o other_o mystery_n for_o when_o we_o bring_v forth_o those_o thing_n we_o so_o up_o their_o mouth_n for_o if_o jesus_n be_v not_o dead_a of_o who_o be_v this_o sacrifice_n a_o token_n and_o sign_n thou_o see_v how_o great_a care_n he_o have_v that_o we_o may_v always_o keep_v in_o remembrance_n that_o he_o die_v for_o us._n there_o can_v nothing_o be_v speak_v more_o plain_o to_o declare_v either_o what_o the_o sacrament_n be_v or_o for_o what_o end_v it_o be_v ordain_v or_o final_o what_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v account_v of_o chrysostom_n and_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o now_o follow_v s._n augustine_n ser._n 2._o pasc._n quia_fw-la christus_fw-la passus_fw-la est_fw-la etc_n etc_n because_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o he_o have_v commend_v unto_o we_o his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o this_o sacrament_n which_o also_o he_o have_v make_v our_o own_o self_n for_o we_o also_o be_v make_v his_o body_n and_o by_o his_o mercy_n we_o be_v that_o which_o we_o receive_v i_o like_v this_o say_n very_o well_o it_o make_v altogether_o for_o the_o truth_n on_o our_o side_n yet_o m._n heskins_n note_v that_o he_o say_v not_o he_o have_v commend_v a_o figure_n or_o memorial_n but_o his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n i_o agree_v well_o but_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v commend_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o a_o sacrament_n he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v his_o natural_a body_n present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n corporal_o that_o i_o may_v follow_v m._n heskin_n negative_a argument_n but_o especial_o let_v we_o note_v what_o he_o say_v and_o not_o what_o he_o say_v not_o he_o say_v we_o be_v the_o same_o that_o we_o receive_v but_o we_o be_v not_o his_o natural_a body_n after_o a_o corporal_a manner_n therefore_o we_o receive_v not_o his_o natural_a body_n after_o a_o corporal_a manner_n the_o rest_n that_o follow_v to_o move_v we_o to_o abide_v in_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n confirm_v the_o same_o dic_fw-la mihi_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la etc_n etc_n tell_v i_o what_o be_v it_o whereof_o thou_o live_v do_v thy_o spirit_n live_v by_o thy_o body_n or_o thy_o body_n by_o thy_o spirit_n every_o one_o that_o live_v answer_v i_o live_v by_o my_o spirit_n and_o he_o that_o can_v not_o answer_v this_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o live_v what_o answer_v every_o one_o that_o live_v my_o body_n true_o live_v by_o my_o spirit_n will_v thou_o therefore_o live_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v thou_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o whether_o do_v my_o body_n live_v of_o thy_o spirit_n i_o live_v of_o my_o spirit_n and_o thou_o live_v of_o thy_o spirit_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o live_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n hereof_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n expound_v this_o bread_n one_o bread_n say_v he_o we_o be_v one_o body_n all_o man_n see_v that_o this_o writer_n speak_v of_o our_o mystical_a and_o spiritual_a conjunction_n with_o christ_n neither_o can_v m._n heskins_n himself_o make_v any_o other_o thing_n of_o it_o hesk._n the_o five_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n proceed_v upon_o the_o same_o text_n by_o damascene_fw-la and_o haimo_fw-la master_n heskins_n store_n be_v far_o spend_v and_o therefore_o he_o make_v much_o of_o the_o remnant_n fulke_n damascene_fw-la and_o haimo_fw-la we_o have_v before_o diverse_a time_n except_v against_o as_o unlawful_a witness_n and_o therefore_o we_o will_v spend_v no_o time_n in_o examine_v their_o say_n but_o whereas_o master_n heskin_n make_v great_a ado_n in_o this_o chapter_n of_o our_o conjunction_n with_o christ_n both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n we_o know_v it_o and_o do_v rejoice_v in_o it_o but_o for_o any_o
they_o that_o be_v in_o die_a be_v cover_v and_o the_o deadly_a stripe_n in_o the_o deep_a and_o inward_a bowel_n be_v hide_v with_o dissemble_a sorrow_n return_v from_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o hand_n filthy_a and_o defile_v with_o the_o greasy_a savour_n they_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a of_o the_o lord_n almost_o yet_o belch_a out_o the_o deadly_a meat_n of_o idol_n with_o their_o law_n yet_o breathe_v out_o their_o wickedness_n and_o savour_v of_o their_o deadly_a infection_n they_o set_v upon_o the_o lord_n body_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n come_v against_o they_o and_o cry_v and_o say_v every_o clean_a person_n shall_v eat_v the_o flesh_n but_o if_o any_o eat_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o wholesome_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n have_v his_o uncleanness_n upon_o he_o the_o same_o soul_n shall_v perish_v from_o among_o his_o people_n the_o apostle_n also_o witness_v and_o say_v you_o can_v not_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n you_o can_v not_o communicate_v of_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n in_o this_o sermon_n cyprian_n reprove_v those_o man_n which_o have_v admit_v to_o the_o communion_n such_o person_n as_o have_v sacrifice_v to_o idol_n before_o they_o be_v thorough_o penitent_a and_o have_v make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v offend_v by_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o order_n of_o good_a discipline_n now_o say_v master_n heskin_n he_o will_v not_o so_o sharp_o have_v reprove_v they_o if_o the_o thing_n they_o receive_v have_v be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n a_o wise_a reason_n what_o if_o a_o man_n at_o that_o time_n have_v come_v unreverent_o to_o baptism_n have_v it_o not_o be_v a_o horrible_a offence_n although_o the_o outward_a element_n of_o baptism_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o little_a water_n although_o when_o we_o say_v ▪_o that_o bread_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o never_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v nothing_o but_o water_n they_o that_o unreverent_o rush_v unto_o the_o lord_n sacrament_n be_v punish_v for_o their_o presumption_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o they_o receive_v whether_o it_o be_v bread_n wine_n or_o water_n but_o for_o that_o they_o receive_v it_o unworthy_o another_o thing_n he_o note_v out_o of_o cyprian_a be_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n because_o he_o allege_v the_o scripture_n of_o leviticus_fw-la which_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o the_o scripture_n can_v not_o be_v right_o apply_v that_o speak_v of_o holy_a meat_n unreverene_o receive_v unto_o the_o unreverent_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n except_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n this_o be_v out_o of_o all_o compass_n of_o reason_n he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o burn_a offering_n because_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v a_o burn_a offering_n and_o a_o hundred_o other_o absurdity_n may_v likewise_o be_v infer_v which_o for_o reverence_n of_o the_o bless_a mystery_n i_o spare_v to_o name_n but_o it_o follow_v in_o cyprian_a immediate_o where_o master_n heskins_n leave_v idem_fw-la conu●●nacibus_fw-la &_o pertinacibus_fw-la comminatur_fw-la &_o detr●●iciat_a dicens_fw-la quicunque_fw-la ederis_fw-la panem_fw-la aut_fw-la biberit_fw-la calicem_fw-la domini_fw-la indignè_fw-la reus_fw-la eri●_n corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la spretis_fw-la his_fw-la omnibus_fw-la atque_fw-la contemp●is_fw-la vis_fw-la infertur_fw-la corpori_fw-la cius_fw-la &_o sanguini_fw-la eiut_a plus_fw-fr modò_fw-la in_o dominum_fw-la manibus_fw-la atque_fw-la ore_fw-la delinquunt_fw-la quàm_fw-la cum_fw-la dominum_fw-la neg●uerunt_fw-la the_o same_o paul_n threaten_v and_o denounce_v to_o the_o obstinate_a and_o froward_a say_v whosoever_o shall_v eat_v of_o the_o bread_n &_o drink_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o these_o say_n be_v despise_v and_o contemn_v violence_n be_v do_v unto_o his_o body_n &_o his_o blood_n they_o do_v more_o offend_v against_o the_o lord_n now_o with_o their_o hand_n &_o their_o mouth_n then_o when_o they_o deny_v the_o lord_n these_o word_n declare_v that_o cyprian_a call_v not_o the_o bread_n &_o cup_n the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n ▪_o as_o m._n hesk._n will_v have_v it_o proper_o but_o figurative_o for_o no_o force_n or_o violence_n can_v be_v do_v to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o there_o may_v and_o christ_n be_v injure_v in_o the_o contempt_n of_o his_o mystery_n as_o the_o prince_n in_o contumelious_a break_n &_o abuse_v of_o the_o broad_a seal_n by_o rebellious_a subject_n though_o he_o suffer_v no_o violence_n in_o his_o own_o person_n chrysostom_n be_v cite_v ho._n 11._o ad_fw-la populum_fw-la antiochen_n quomodo_fw-la sacrum_fw-la videbimus_fw-la pascha_fw-la etc_n etc_n how_o shall_v we_o see_v the_o holy_a passover_n how_o shall_v we_o receive_v the_o holy_a sacrifice_n how_o shall_v we_o communicate_v in_o these_o marvellous_a mystery_n with_o that_o tongue_n with_o which_o we_o have_v contemn_v the_o law_n of_o god_n with_o that_o ●ong_a with_o which_o we_o have_v defile_v our_o soul_n for_o if_o no_o man_n dare_v take_v the_o king_n purple_a robe_n with_o foul_a hand_n how_o shall_v we_o receive_v the_o lord_n body_n with_o a_o defile_a tongue_n for_o swear_v be_v of_o the_o wicked_a sacrifice_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o what_o communication_n be_v there_o between_o light_n and_o darkness_n what_o agreement_n between_o christ_n and_o belial_n here_o say_v m._n hesk._n by_o the_o excellent_a title_n he_o give_v the_o sacrament_n be_v prove_v the_o real_a presence_n the_o holy_a sacrifice_n wonderful_a mystery_n the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n light_n &_o christ_n himself_o but_o one_o of_o these_o title_n be_v manifest_o unproper_a and_o figurative_a namely_o that_o of_o light_n and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o likewise_o baptism_n have_v honourable_a title_n yet_o be_v there_o no_o transubstantiation_n therein_o the_o second_o note_n to_o prove_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v that_o say_v how_o shall_v we_o with_o defile_v tongue_n receive_v the_o lord_n body_n here_o the_o body_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n and_o tongue_n therefore_o corporal_o but_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o chrysostom_n by_o this_o interogation_n deny_v that_o it_o can_v be_v receive_v with_o a_o defile_a tongue_n where_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o place_n but_o i_o will_v grant_v that_o he_o use_v so_o to_o speak_v but_o unproper_o that_o the_o hand_n &_o the_o tongue_n receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o mean_v no_o carnal_a manner_n of_o presence_n as_o ho._n 21._o ad_fw-la pop._n antioch_n cogita_fw-la quid_fw-la manu_fw-la capias_fw-la &_o ipsam_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la avaritia_fw-la &_o rapina_fw-la liberam_fw-la conserua_fw-la consider_v what_o thou_o receive_v with_o thy_o hand_n and_o keep_v it_o free_a from_o all_o covetousness_n &_o extortion_n this_o peradventure_o please_v m._n heskins_n but_o it_o follow_v soon_o after_o etenim_fw-la perniciosum_fw-la est_fw-la tam_fw-la tremendis_fw-la ministra●●em_fw-la mysterijs_fw-la linguam_fw-la &_o sanguine_a tall_a purpuratam_fw-la &_o factam_fw-la aureum_fw-la gladium_fw-la ad_fw-la cornicia_fw-la &_o contumelias_fw-la &_o scurrilitates_fw-la transfer_v for_o it_o be_v a_o pernicious_a thing_n to_o transfer_v that_o tongue_n which_o minister_v unto_o so_o reverend_a mystery_n &_o be_v die_v purple_a with_o such_o blood_n and_o make_v a_o golden_a sword_n unto_o rail_v revile_v and_o scoff_v here_o the_o tongue_n do_v not_o only_o receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o be_v make_v red_a or_o purple_a with_o it_o &_o be_v make_v by_o it_o a_o golden_a sword_n if_o these_o be_v not_o figurative_a speech_n they_o be_v monstruous_a absurdity_n and_o yet_o again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n sed_fw-la rursum_fw-la advertens_fw-la quod_fw-la post_fw-la manus_fw-la &_o li●guam_fw-la cor_fw-la suscipit_fw-la horrendum_fw-la illud_fw-la mysteri●en_fw-la ne_fw-la unquam_fw-la in_o proximum_fw-la sumas_fw-la dolum_fw-la sed_fw-la mensen_v tuam_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la malitia_fw-la mund●m_fw-la conserua_fw-la fic_z &_o oculos_fw-la &_o aures_fw-la munire_fw-la poteris_fw-la but_o again_o consider_v that_o after_o thy_o hand_n &_o thy_o tongue_n thy_o heart_n receive_v that_o fearful_a mystery_n never_o devise_v any_o craft_n against_o thy_o neighbour_n but_o keep_v thy_o mind_n clean_o from_o all_o malice_n so_o may_v thou_o defend_v thine_o eye_n and_o thine_o ear_n and_o the_o like_a speech_n he_o have_v of_o the_o eye_n and_o the_o ear_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o although_o he_o speak_v figurative_o in_o the_o way_n of_o exhortation_n yet_o he_o mean_v not_o to_o teach_v any_o other_o but_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n of_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n
with_o the_o heart_n although_o the_o eye_n ear_n hand_n and_o tongue_n be_v occupy_v about_o the_o sacrament_n thereof_o after_o m._n heskins_n note_v that_o chrysostom_n in_o the_o place_n by_o he_o cite_v call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n so_o do_v he_o a_o hundred_o time_n elsewhere_o but_o that_o prove_v not_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n but_o rather_o a_o memory_n of_o christ_n only_a sacrifice_n as_o he_o teach_v himself_o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la heb._n ca._n 10._o hom._n 17._o and_o here_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o refute_v the_o rule_n of_o cranmer_n or_o of_o he_o that_o set_v forth_o the_o book_n in_o his_o name_n as_o though_o that_o learned_a father_n be_v not_o able_a to_o set_v forth_o his_o book_n himself_o as_o well_o as_o this_o blind_a buzzard_n heskin_n who_o have_v nothing_o in_o effect_n but_o that_o he_o have_v steal_v out_o of_o gardiners_n m._n constantius_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v this_o wise_a refutation_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n say_v he_o be_v not_o receive_v of_o we_o but_o give_v from_o we_o to_o god._n no_o more_o be_v any_o sacrifice_n in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n oh_o the_o unlearned_a confuter_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o father_n rule_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v receive_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o respect_n that_o it_o have_v be_v offer_v so_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a writer_n call_v a_o sacrifice_n unproper_o because_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n once_o offer_v by_o himself_o &_o in_o respect_n of_o that_o action_n of_o the_o administration_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n &_o therefore_o of_o they_o be_v call_v eucharistia_n a_o thanksgiving_n another_o reason_n to_o prove_v it_o no_o gratulatory_a sacrifice_n be_v because_o he_o call_v it_o a_o wonderful_a sacrifice_n but_o thanksgiving_n be_v but_o a_o ordinary_a duty_n shore_n up_o your_o drowsy_a eye_n m._n hesk._n &_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o call_v it_o a_o holy_a sacrifice_n &_o so_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n he_o call_v it_o not_o a_o wonderful_a sacrifice_n but_o a_o wonderful_a mystery_n except_o mystery_n &_o sacrifice_n be_v all_o one_o with_o you_o but_o if_o he_o have_v call_v it_o a_o wonderful_a sacrifice_n as_o else_o where_o he_o call_v it_o a_o fearful_a or_o terrible_a sacrifice_n do_v that_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n he_o call_v it_o fearful_a terrible_a reverend_a wonderful_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o divine_a work_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o bodi_fw-la &_o blood_n by_o receive_v these_o outward_a creature_n worthy_o according_a to_o his_o appointment_n as_o for_o the_o name_n i_o have_v answer_v before_o they_o prove_v no_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a but_o now_o at_o length_n m._n hes._n have_v build_v on_o this_o place_n of_o paul_n &_o chrysost._n which_o deny_v the_o partake_v of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o they_o that_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n or_o otherwise_o be_v wicked_a man_n give_v s._n paul_n &_o chryso_n a_o new_a interpretation_n s._n paul_n say_v he_o do_v not_o absolute_o deny_v but_o conditional_o say_v that_o man_n can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lords_z table_n &_o of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n that_o be_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o that_o you_o can_v &_o you_o ought_v not_o be_v all_o one_o with_o m._n hesk._n for_o you_o can_v say_v he_o if_o you_o do_v well_o but_o think_v this_o gross_a expositor_n to_o escape_v with_o this_o gloze_n i_o ask_v he_o whether_o light_n &_o darkness_n can_v agree_v whether_o christ_n &_o belial_n can_v have_v any_o fellowship_n be_v these_o negative_n absolute_o or_o conditional_o be_v it_o now_o otherwise_o to_o be_v take_v but_o light_n and_o darkness_n ought_v not_o to_o agree_v or_o can_v agree_v if_o they_o do_v well_o &_o christ_n &_o belial_n ought_v not_o to_o agree_v or_o can_v agree_v if_o they_o do_v well_o oh_o blind_a interpreter_n or_o rather_o shameful_a perverter_n of_o the_o straight_a way_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o see_v in_o despite_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o the_o wicked_a receive_v christ_n manifest_o bear_v down_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o consequent_o transubstantiation_n lay_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o yet_o this_o arrogant_a expounder_n as_o though_o he_o have_v find_v out_o a_o sword_n to_o cut_v in_o sunder_o this_o gordian_a knot_n with_o like_a madness_n run_v at_o origen_n say_v which_o he_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o quote_v lest_o any_o man_n shall_v read_v it_o to_o his_o shame_n and_o overthrow_v of_o his_o popish_a transubstantiation_n but_o it_o be_v write_v in_o math._n cap._n 15._o multa_fw-la p●rro_fw-la etc_n etc_n many_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o the_o word_n himself_o that_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o very_a meat_n who_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v shall_v love_v for_o ever_o which_o no_o evil_a man_n can_v eat_v first_o as_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o brazen_a face_a gardener_n he_o will_v not_o certain_o admit_v that_o work_n to_o be_v origen_n which_o be_v a_o impudent_a shift_n when_o none_o of_o they_o can_v allege_v any_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v doubt_v of_o it_o second_o he_o hew_v at_o it_o with_o his_o leaden_a sword_n say_v a_o evil_a man_n can_v not_o eat_v of_o it_o to_o his_o profit_n but_o yet_o he_o may_v eat_v of_o it_o but_o it_o follow_v in_o origen_n immediate_o etenim_fw-la si_fw-la fieri_fw-la posset_n ut_fw-la qui_fw-la malus_fw-la adhuc_fw-la perseverat_fw-la edat_fw-la verbum_fw-la factum_fw-la carnem_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o panis_fw-la viws_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la scriptum_fw-la fuisset_fw-la quisquis_fw-la ederic_a panem_fw-la hunc_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la for_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o he_o which_o as_o yet_o continue_v a_o evil_a man_n shall_v eat_v the_o word_n make_v flesh_n see_v he_o be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n it_o have_v not_o be_v write_v whosoever_o shall_v eat_v of_o this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o here_o origen_n say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v eat_v he_o but_o he_o must_v take_v profit_n by_o he_o so_o the_o knot_n be_v too_o hard_a for_o master_n heskin_n wooden_a dagger_n to_o cleave_v a_o sunder_o for_o as_o he_o himself_o conclude_v betwixt_o god_n and_o belial_n be_v none_o agreement_n neither_o can_v dagon_n stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o ark_n and_o much_o less_o wickedness_n where_o christ_n be_v receive_v for_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n reject_v of_o the_o wicked_a but_o cause_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o all_o that_o receive_v he_o hesk._n the_o one_o and_o thirty_o chapter_n end_v the_o exposition_n of_o this_o text_n by_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o anselmus_fw-la i_o have_v think_v to_o have_v say_v nothing_o of_o these_o late_a writer_n fulk_n but_o that_o master_n heskin_n will_v make_v theophylact_v so_o ancient_a as_o to_o be_v three_o hundred_o year_n elder_a than_o anselmus_fw-la which_o be_v archbishop_n of_o caunterburie_n almost_o 500_o year_n ago_o so_o that_o theophylact_fw-mi shall_v be_v near_o 800._o year_n old_a but_o to_o confute_v his_o impudency_n first_o you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o bulgars_n of_o who_o he_o be_v bishop_n be_v not_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n before_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 865._o and_o after_o their_o first_o conversion_n they_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o join_v with_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n after_o this_o theophylact_fw-mi be_v there_o bishop_n and_o although_o the_o history_n be_v not_o certain_a what_o time_n he_o live_v yet_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v gather_v to_o be_v when_o the_o contention_n be_v hot_a between_o the_o greek_n &_o roman_n about_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o that_o in_o his_o exposition_n upon_o the_o third_o of_o john_n he_o inveigh_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n defend_v the_o greek_n about_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 1049_o when_o berengarius_fw-la live_v and_o reprove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o carnal_a presence_n that_o then_o or_o not_o long_o before_o be_v begin_v to_o be_v gross_o defend_v but_o the_o chief_a matter_n he_o gather_v out_o of_o anselme_n be_v that_o he_o expound_v the_o table_n in_o saint_n paul_n for_o a_o altar_n whereupon_o master_n heskin_n will_v make_v a_o discourse_n of_o altar_n and_o prove_v the_o use_n of_o they_o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o dionyse_n the_o disciple_n of_o s._n paul_n eccl._n hier._n part_n 3._o cap._n 3._o sed_fw-la
break_v down_o thine_o altar_n while_o he_o say_v thou_o he_o show_v that_o the_o thing_n be_v god_n where_o any_o thing_n be_v offer_v of_o any_o man_n to_o god._n upon_o pretence_n of_o this_o place_n master_n hesk._n charge_v we_o with_o great_a sacrilege_n for_o pull_v down_o their_o popish_a altar_n on_o which_o they_o commit_v idolatry_n and_o most_o horrible_a sacrilege_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v command_v to_o overthrow_v such_o altar_n to_o break_v down_o their_o pillar_n &_o burn_v their_o image_n with_o fire_n deut._n 7._o and_o whereas_o he_o compare_v we_o to_o one_o julianus_n a_o heathen_a man_n that_o piss_v against_o the_o altar_n and_o therefore_o be_v horrible_o punish_v he_o show_v his_o wisdom_n for_o there_o a_o idolater_n do_v villainous_o contemn_v the_o christian_n religion_n &_o therefore_o be_v just_o plague_v of_o god_n but_o we_o as_o christian_n have_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o overthrow_v their_o antichristian_a &_o idolatrous_a altar_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v the_o fact_n of_o julianus_n be_v not_o worse_a than_o the_o filthiness_n of_o pope_n john_n that_o lie_v with_o his_o whore_n upon_o your_o altar_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o altar_n &_o sacrifice_n be_v correlative_n &_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v none_o altar_n but_o there_o be_v also_o sacrifice_n i_o have_v show_v sufficient_o how_o the_o old_a writer_n call_v the_o communion_n table_n a_o altar_n and_o the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrifice_n namely_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n and_o not_o of_o propitiation_n and_o yet_o more_o must_v i_o say_v upon_o m._n heskin_n discourse_n that_o follow_v hesk._n the_o two_o and_o thirty_o chapter_n upon_o occasion_n that_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n use_v the_o altar_n and_o repute_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n begin_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o common_o call_v the_o mass_n fulk_n because_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n &_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v unproper_o use_v by_o ancient_a writer_n for_o we_o have_v show_v that_o their_o altar_n be_v a_o table_n and_o their_o sacrifice_n a_o thanksgiving_n therefore_o m._n hesk._n will_v treat_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o first_o of_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n which_o he_o say_v we_o abhor_v and_o just_o because_o it_o have_v be_v use_v of_o many_o year_n to_o signify_v a_o most_o blasphemous_a and_o idolatrous_a service_n the_o name_n he_o will_v derive_v in_o all_o the_o haste_n out_o of_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n from_o a_o word_n that_o be_v call_v master_n from_o whence_o the_o latin_n have_v derive_v their_o word_n missa_fw-la be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o greek_n call_v liturgia_fw-la and_o the_o latin_n officium_fw-la which_o be_v in_o english_a a_o service_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o if_o missa_fw-la or_o mass_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o service_n than_o even_o song_n may_v be_v call_v mass_n because_o it_o be_v a_o service_n second_o it_o carry_v no_o show_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o latin_n will_v borrow_v their_o name_n of_o the_o hebrew_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o greek_n three_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o hebrew_n word_n as_o master_n heskins_n affirm_v to_o be_v mas_o signify_v a_o service_n as_o i_o report_v i_o to_o all_o that_o have_v but_o mean_a knowledge_n in_o the_o tongue_n four_o that_o although_o the_o name_n of_o missa_fw-la be_v of_o some_o antiquity_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o be_v it_o neither_o so_o ancient_a as_o he_o make_v it_o and_o that_o which_o be_v chief_o to_o be_v regard_v it_o be_v never_o find_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v his_o authority_n first_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n epist._n 79._o say_v thus_o necesse_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la quaedam_fw-la pars_fw-la populi_fw-la sva_fw-la devotione_fw-la privetur_fw-la si_fw-la uniut_a tantùm_fw-la missae_fw-la more_fw-it seruato_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offer_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la prima_fw-la diei_fw-la parte_fw-la convenerint_fw-la it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o some_o part_n of_o the_o people_n be_v deprive_v of_o their_o devotion_n if_o the_o manner_n or_o custom_n of_o our_o only_a mass_n be_v observe_v they_o can_v offer_v sacrifice_n except_o such_o as_o come_v together_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o day_n upon_o colour_n of_o this_o place_n master_n heskin_n will_v not_o only_o prove_v that_o the_o name_n of_o missa_fw-la be_v ancient_a but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o say_v more_o than_o one_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n if_o two_o then_o three_o if_o three_o then_o ten_o if_o ten_o then_o fifteen_o and_o so_o twenty_o which_o the_o proclaimer_n say_v can_v not_o be_v prove_v but_o you_o shall_v see_v how_o lewd_o he_o abuse_v his_o reader_n the_o proclaimer_n challenge_n be_v of_o ten_o or_o twenty_o private_a mass_n say_v in_o one_o church_n and_o common_o at_o one_o time_n master_n heskins_n bring_v in_o authority_n of_o leo_n which_o prove_v that_o when_o one_o communion_n can_v not_o serve_v any_o more_o than_o so_o many_o as_o the_o church_n will_v hold_v at_o one_o time_n it_o be_v meet_v it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v twice_o or_o as_o often_o as_o the_o same_o be_v fill_v with_o people_n until_o all_o have_v receive_v which_o as_o we_o confess_v to_o be_v true_a so_o make_v it_o nothing_o in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o private_a mass_n but_o altogether_o against_o it_o as_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o whole_a treaty_n go_v before_o which_o master_n heskin_n according_a to_o his_o accustom_a sincerity_n have_v clean_o leave_v out_o ut_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la obseruantia_fw-la nostra_fw-la concordet_fw-la illud_fw-la quoque_fw-la volumus_fw-la custodiri_fw-la ut_fw-la quum_fw-la solennior_fw-la festivitas_fw-la conventum_fw-la populi_fw-la numerosioris_fw-la indixerit_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la eam_fw-la tanta_fw-la multitudo_fw-la convenerit_fw-la quam_fw-la recipere_fw-la basilica_n simul_fw-la una_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la oblatio_fw-la indubitanter_fw-la iteretur_fw-la ne_fw-la his_fw-la tantùm_fw-la admissis_fw-la ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la devotionem_fw-la qui_fw-la primi_fw-la advenerint_fw-la videantur_fw-la hi_o qui_fw-la posimodum_fw-la confluxerint_fw-la non_fw-la recepti_fw-la cum_fw-la plenum_fw-la pietatis_fw-la atque_fw-la rationis_fw-la fit_a ut_fw-la quoties_fw-la basilicam_fw-la pręsentia_fw-la nonae_fw-la plebis_fw-la impleverit_fw-la toties_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la subsequens_fw-la offeratur_fw-la and_o that_o our_o observation_n may_v agree_v in_o all_o thing_n this_o also_o we_o will_v have_v to_o be_v keep_v that_o when_o a_o more_o solemn_a festivity_n shall_v call_v together_o a_o great_a assembly_n of_o people_n and_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n be_v gather_v unto_o it_o that_o one_o great_a church_n can_v not_o receive_v they_o altogether_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n without_o doubt_n may_v be_v do_v again_o lest_o those_o only_o be_v admit_v which_o come_v first_o they_o which_o come_v together_o afterward_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v whereas_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n full_a of_o godliness_n and_o reason_n that_o how_o often_o so_o ever_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o new_a people_n shall_v fill_v the_o church_n so_o often_o the_o sacrifice_n follow_v shall_v be_v offer_v but_o m._n heskins_n urge_v in_o the_o place_n by_o he_o cite_v that_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la be_v use_v which_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o this_o be_v almost_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n about_o the_o year_n 480._o second_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n but_o he_o will_v not_o see_v that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o all_o the_o people_n offer_v which_o can_v not_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a but_o of_o thanksgiving_n howbeit_o he_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v or_o aught_o by_o join_v affection_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o priest_n to_o be_v offer_v of_o they_o all_o what_o affection_n or_o devotion_n he_o will_v have_v to_o the_o priest_n i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v but_o let_v he_o shadow_v himself_o in_o what_o fond_a phrase_n of_o word_n he_o will_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o avoid_v but_o that_o the_o people_n by_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n do_v offer_v sacrifice_n in_o as_o ample_a manner_n as_o the_o priest_n and_o then_o they_o be_v all_o priest_n beside_o this_o in_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n he_o observe_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n before_o his_o time_n to_o have_v but_o one_o mass_n or_o communion_n in_o a_o day_n so_o straight_o keep_v that_o upon_o necessity_n they_o will_v not_o relent_v therein_o until_o he_o take_v this_o order_n with_o they_o but_o master_n heskins_n ask_v what_o scripture_n the_o proclaimer_n have_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o twenty_o mass_n in_o one_o church_n in_o one_o day_n i_o answer_v saint_n paul_n will_v the_o corinthian_n to_o
substantial_a part_n which_o be_v consecration_n oblation_n and_o receive_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o into_o outward_a ceremony_n prayer_n gesture_n &_o manner_n institute_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o not_o of_o christ_n in_o these_o late_a he_o grant_v that_o the_o mass_n of_o s._n peter_n of_o s._n andrew_n of_o s._n james_n of_o s._n clement_n of_o s._n dionyse_n s._n basil_n chrysostom_n s._n ambrose_n do_v differ_v one_o from_o another_o but_o not_o in_o the_o former_a substantial_a part_n &_o special_o in_o consecration_n and_o oblation_n wherein_o the_o controversy_n stand_v which_o m._n heskin_n will_v prove_v add_v two_o handmaid_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v to_o consecration_n intention_n and_o to_o oblation_n prayer_n for_o acceptation_n so_o by_o his_o divinity_n the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v more_o force_n than_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n to_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a and_o when_o it_o be_v present_a and_o sacrifice_v it_o have_v need_n of_o the_o priest_n prayer_n for_o acceptation_n but_o he_o will_v begin_v with_o s._n peter_n mass_n and_o that_o he_o prove_v by_o this_o reason_n the_o proclaimer_n confess_v though_o in_o scorn_n that_o some_o say_v s._n peter_n say_v mass_n at_o rome_n but_o no_o ancient_a writer_n say_v he_o do_v not_o say_v mass_n therefore_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o do_v say_v mass_n this_o argument_n be_v of_o like_a force_n with_o this_o that_o i_o will_v bring_v some_o say_v that_o master_n heskin_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n marry_v a_o nun_n which_o no_o ancient_a writer_n deny_v therefore_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o marry_v a_o nun_n and_o so_o peradventure_o it_o be_v although_o it_o follow_v not_o upon_o the_o assumption_n that_o no_o ancient_a writer_n deny_v it_o and_o as_o for_o s._n peter_n massing_n as_o there_o be_v no_o ancient_a writer_n that_o write_v within_o 600._o year_n of_o christ_n that_o deny_v it_o so_o be_v there_o none_o that_o affirm_v it_o but_o you_o shall_v hear_v another_o reason_n s._n peter_n that_o sit_v 2d_o year_n at_o rome_n and_o have_v say_v mass_n at_o antioch_n be_v not_o like_a to_o have_v neglect_v his_o duty_n at_o rome_n admit_v it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n which_o be_v not_o all_o out_o of_o doubt_n and_o that_o he_o sit_v as_o bishop_n there_o 25._o year_n which_o be_v prove_v false_a by_o the_o scripture_n all_o though_o hierome_n and_o eusebius_n do_v affirm_v it_o yet_o how_o prove_v m._n hesk._n that_o it_o be_v any_o part_n of_o his_o duty_n to_o say_v mass_n either_o there_o or_o else_o where_o or_o that_o he_o do_v say_v mass_n at_o antioch_n his_o first_o witness_n be_v hugo_n de_fw-fr s._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la par_fw-fr 8._o cap._n 14._o who_o although_o he_o be_v a_o late_a writer_n unworthy_a of_o credit_n in_o this_o cause_n yet_o i_o will_v set_v down_o his_o word_n that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o much_o they_o make_v for_o m._n heskins_n cause_n celebratio_fw-la miss_n etc_n etc_n the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v do_v in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o command_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o they_o his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n say_v this_o do_v you_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o this_o mass_n s_o peter_n the_o apostle_n be_v say_v first_o of_o all_o man_n to_o have_v say_v at_o antioch_n in_o the_o which_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o faith_n there_o be_v only_o three_o prayer_n say_v if_o this_o be_v true_a none_o of_o the_o apostle_n say_v mass_n at_o jerusalem_n many_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o minister_v the_o lord_n supper_n therefore_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o if_o he_o will_v restrain_v the_o word_n of_o hugo_n to_o mean_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o that_o say_v mass_n at_o antioch_n the_o consequence_n will_v be_v the_o same_o for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o gospel_n be_v first_o preach_v at_o antiochia_n by_o those_o cyprian_n and_o cyrenians_n that_o flee_v upon_o the_o persecution_n of_o stephan_n barnabas_n and_o paul_n send_v thither_o by_o the_o apostle_n bring_v the_o antiochian_n to_o be_v perfect_a christian_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n begin_v there_o before_o peter_n come_v thither_o to_o say_v mass_n but_o they_o can_v not_o be_v christian_n without_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n therefore_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v not_o the_o mass_n again_o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v but_o three_o prayer_n in_o s._n peter_n mass_n &_o some_o popish_a writer_n affirm_v that_o he_o use_v no_o prayer_n but_o the_o lord_n prayer_n if_o this_o be_v true_a what_o liklyhod_n have_v s._n peter_n mass_n with_o the_o popish_a mass_n but_o only_o that_o it_o please_v they_o to_o call_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lords_z supper_n which_o peeter_n no_o doubt_n minister_v pure_o a●ter_v christ_n institution_n by_o the_o name_n of_o their_o impure_a mass_n after_o the_o testimony_n of_o remigius_n he_o bring_v in_o isidorus_n who_o he_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v before_o remigius_n &_o yet_o he_o be_v without_o that_o compass_n of_o 600_o year_n after_o christ_n whereas_o in_o other_o place_n before_o he_o make_v remigius_n almost_o 200._o year_n elder_n they_o isidorus_n but_o isidorus_n affirm_v li._n 1_n de_fw-fr off._n ecc._n cap._n 15._o that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o prayer_n with_o which_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v to_o god_n be_v consecrate_v be_v first_o institute_v by_o s._n peter_n although_o he_o live_v in_o a_o erroneous_a &_o superstitious_a time_n yet_o he_o mean_v that_o s._n peter_n do_v appoint_v a_o order_n and_o form_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lords_z supper_z but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o same_o order_n be_v not_o extant_a in_o his_o time_n much_o less_o now_o for_o gregory_n be_v make_v the_o institutor_fw-la of_o the_o popish_a mass_n which_o be_v not_o long_o before_o isidorus_n next_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o s._n paul_n say_v mass_n though_o no_o old_a writer_n faith_n it_o for_o say_v he_o s._n paul_n do_v that_o he_o teach_v but_o he_o teach_v the_o mass_n therefore_o he_o say_v mass_n he_o minister_v the_o communion_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n he_o teach_v in_o those_o chapter_n 11._o in_o which_o in_o deed_n be_v mention_n of_o consecration_n and_o receive_v but_o no_o syllable_n of_o oblation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o for_o the_o order_n &_o form_n of_o ministration_n it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o doctrine_n &_o when_o he_o say_v other_o thing_n i_o will_v set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v although_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o matter_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n save_v the_o authority_n of_o hugo_n hierom_n &_o augustine_n yet_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o he_o do_v dispose_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o epistle_n as_o all_o the_o popish_a filthiness_n be_v which_o m._n hesk._n will_v thrust_v upon_o we_o under_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o s._n paul_n ordain_v but_o it_o be_v wonderful_a to_o see_v his_o blockish_a forwardness_n that_o he_o will_v prove_v out_o of_o aug._n that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o mass_n now_o use_v be_v the_o order_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o ep._n 118._o vnde_fw-la datur_fw-la etc_n etc_n whereby_o it_o be_v give_v to_o be_v understand_v because_o it_o be_v much_o that_o in_o a_o epistle_n he_o shall_v set_v forth_o all_o that_o order_n of_o do_v which_o the_o universal_a church_n through_o out_o the_o world_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v of_o he_o which_o by_o no_o diversity_n of_o manner_n be_v alter_v he_o speak_v of_o receive_v of_o the_o communion_n fast_v which_o m_o h._n wilful_o have_v corrupt_v by_o a_o false_a translation_n and_o by_o wrong_n point_v &_o falsify_v the_o relative_a quod_fw-la to_o make_v it_o a_o conjunction_n that_o he_o may_v apply_v it_o to_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o his_o popish_a mass_n which_o aug._n speak_v but_o of_o that_o one_o ceremony_n of_o receive_v fast_v and_o not_o after_o supper_n augustine_n word_n be_v these_o vnde_fw-la datur_fw-la intelligi_fw-la quia_fw-la mulium_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o epistola_fw-la totum_fw-la agendi_fw-la ordinem_fw-la insinuaret_fw-la quem_fw-la universa_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la obseruat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la esse_fw-la quod_fw-la nulla_fw-la morum_fw-la diversitate_fw-la variatur_fw-la which_o m._n hes._n have_v corrupt_v thus_o whereby_o it_o be_v give_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v too_o much_o that_o in_o a_o epistle_n he_o shall_v declare_v all_o that_o order_n of_o ministration_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n
more_o certainty_n and_o better_a credit_n than_o the_o papist_n can_v bring_v any_o show_v by_o god_n since_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o because_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v confirm_v by_o all_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n we_o seek_v no_o confirmation_n thereof_o by_o late_a miracle_n but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o herein_o we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o s._n augustine_n who_o urge_v the_o donatistes_fw-fr to_o prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n only_o by_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o not_o by_o miracle_n whereof_o they_o boast_v more_o than_o the_o catholic_n lib_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 16._o et_fw-la sic_fw-la ostendat_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la dicat_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la ego_fw-la hoc_fw-la dico_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la dixit_fw-la ille_fw-la collega_fw-la meut_n 〈◊〉_d illi_fw-la collegae_fw-la mei_fw-la aut_fw-la illi_fw-la episcopi_fw-la vel_fw-la clerici_fw-la vel_fw-la laici_fw-la nost●i_fw-la aut_fw-la ideo_fw-la verum_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la illa_fw-la &_o illa_fw-la mirabilia_fw-la fecit_fw-la donatus_n vel_fw-la pontius_n vel_fw-la quilibet_fw-la alius_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la homines_fw-la ad_fw-la memorias_fw-la mortuorum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la orant_fw-la &_o exaudiuntur_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la illa_fw-la &_o illa_fw-la ibi_fw-la contingunt_fw-la aut_fw-la quiae_fw-la ille_fw-la fraeter_fw-la noster_fw-la aut_fw-la illa_fw-la soror_fw-la nostra_fw-la tale_n visum_fw-la vigilans_fw-la vidit_fw-la vel_fw-la tale_n visum_fw-la dormiens_fw-la somnianis_fw-la removeantur_fw-la ista_fw-la vel_fw-la figmenta_fw-la mendacium_fw-la hominum_fw-la vel_fw-la portenta_fw-la fallacium_fw-la spirituun_fw-la ut_fw-la enick_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la vera_fw-la quę_n dicuntur_fw-la aut_fw-la sihęreticorun_v aliqua_fw-la mira_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la magis_fw-la canere_fw-la debemus_fw-la and_o so_o let_v he_o show_v the_o church_n that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v true_a because_o i_o say_v it_o or_o because_o such_o a_o one_o my_o fellow_n say_v it_o or_o those_o my_o fellow_n or_o those_o our_o bishop_n or_o clerk_n or_o layman_n or_o it_o be_v therefore_o true_a because_o donatus_n or_o pontius_n or_o any_o other_o have_v do_v those_o and_o those_o miracle_n or_o because_o man_n pray_v at_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o dead_a man_n and_o be_v hear_v or_o because_o those_o thing_n &_o those_o thing_n happen_v there_o or_o because_o this_o our_o brother_n or_o that_o our_o sister_n see_v such_o a_o vision_n wake_v or_o dream_v such_o a_o vision_n sleep_v let_v these_o thing_n be_v set_v aside_o which_o be_v either_o the_o counterfeit_n of_o lie_a man_n or_o else_o the_o wonder_n of_o deceive_a spirit_n for_o either_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o true_a that_o be_v tell_v or_o else_o if_o any_o miracle_n be_v do_v of_o heretic_n we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o beware_v of_o they_o and_o after_o a_o little_a he_o say_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n sed_fw-la verum_fw-la ipsi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la teneant_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la divinarum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canonicis_fw-la libria_fw-la ostendant_fw-la quia_fw-la nec_fw-la nos_fw-la propterea_fw-la dicimus_fw-la nobis_fw-la credere_fw-la oportere_fw-la quòd_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la sumus_fw-la quia_fw-la ipsam_fw-la quam_fw-la tenemus_fw-la commendavit_fw-la milevitanus_fw-la optatus_n vel_fw-la mediolanensis_fw-la ambrose_n vel_fw-la alij_fw-la innumerabiles_fw-la nostre_fw-fr communionis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la collegarum_fw-la concilijs_fw-la ipsa_fw-la praedicata_fw-la est_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la sanctis_fw-la quae_fw-la frequentat_fw-la communio_fw-la nostra_fw-la tanta_fw-la mirabilia_fw-la vel_fw-la exauditionum_fw-la vel_fw-la sanitatum_fw-la fiant_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la latentia_fw-la per_fw-la tot_fw-la annos_fw-la corpora_fw-la martyrum_fw-la quod_fw-la possunt_fw-la a_o mu●tis_fw-la interrogantes_fw-la audire_fw-la ambrosio_n fuerint_fw-la revelata_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la ipsa_fw-la corpora_fw-la caecus_fw-la multorum_fw-la annorum_fw-la civitati_fw-la mediolanensi_fw-la notissimus_fw-la oculos_fw-la luménque_fw-la reciperet_fw-la aut_fw-la quia_fw-la ille_fw-la somnium_fw-la vidit_fw-la &_o ille_fw-la spiritu_fw-la assumptus_fw-la audivit_fw-la sive_fw-la ne_fw-la iniret_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la donati_n sive_fw-la ut_fw-la recederet_fw-la à_fw-la parte_fw-la donati_n quęcunque_fw-la talia_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la fiunt_fw-la ideo_fw-la sunt_fw-la approbanda_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la fiunt_fw-la non_fw-la ìdeo_fw-la ipsa_fw-la manifestatur_fw-la catholica_fw-la quia_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la fiunt_fw-la but_o whether_o they_o hold_v the_o church_n or_o no_o let_v they_o show_v none_o otherwise_o but_o by_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o man_n ought_v therefore_o to_o believe_v we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o church_n because_o optatus_n of_o milevitum_n or_o ambrose_n of_o milan_n or_o innumerable_a other_o bishop_n of_o our_o fellowship_n have_v commend_v this_o church_n which_o we_o hold_v or_o because_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o and_o praise_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o our_o fellowship_n or_o because_o that_o in_o holy_a place_n through_o the_o world_n which_o our_o fellowship_n do_v frequent_a so_o great_a miracle_n be_v do_v either_o of_o hear_v man_n prayer_n or_o of_o restore_v to_o health_n so_o that_o the_o body_n of_o martyr_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v so_o many_o year_n which_o thing_n if_o they_o will_v ask_v they_o may_v hear_v of_o many_o be_v reveal_v to_o ambrose_n &_o at_o the_o same_o body_n one_o that_o have_v be_v blind_a many_o year_n very_o well_o know_v to_o the_o city_n of_o milan_n receive_v his_o eye_n and_o sight_n or_o because_o this_o man_n see_v a_o dream_n or_o that_o man_n be_v take_v up_o in_o spirit_n and_o hear_v either_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v into_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v depart_v from_o it_o whatsoever_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v allow_v because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v not_o thereby_o prove_v catholic_a because_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o it_o and_o thus_o much_o concern_v miracle_n the_o issue_n that_o m._n hesk._n join_v be_v try_v by_o all_o catholic_a &_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v idolatry_n because_o it_o be_v a_o worship_v of_o creature_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o creator_n although_o none_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n call_v the_o mass_n idolatry_n which_o have_v neither_o name_n nor_o be_v in_o their_o day_n the_o three_o and_o forty_o chapter_n make_v recapitulation_n of_o the_o conference_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o now_o be_v with_o a_o brief_a hesk._n confutation_n of_o the_o conference_n make_v by_o the_o proclaimer_n between_o th●_z mass_n of_o saint_n james_n and_o that_o be_v now_o use_v fulk_n the_o recapitulation_n contain_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v confute_v in_o the_o discourse_n at_o large_a i_o will_v omit_v it_o and_o come_v to_o the_o conference_n that_o the_o bishop_n make_v between_o the_o liturgy_n false_o ascribe_v to_o s._n james_n and_o the_o popish_a mass_n be_v content_a for_o the_o time_n to_o call_v it_o saint_n james_n mass_n as_o master_n heskins_n do_v although_o neither_o it_o be_v a_o mass_n nor_o such_o as_o it_o be_v be_v it_o write_v by_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n but_o by_o some_o of_o much_o late_a time_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o prayer_n therein_o contain_v for_o such_o as_o live_v in_o monastery_n and_o other_o thing_n favour_v of_o the_o error_n of_o that_o time_n in_o which_o it_o be_v write_v the_o first_o point_n of_o the_o conference_n be_v that_o s._n james_n say_v mass_n in_o the_o common_a tongue_n understand_v of_o the_o people_n the_o papist_n say_v mass_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n m._n heskins_n answer_v that_o this_o point_n touch_v not_o the_o substance_n for_o the_o mass_n may_v be_v good_a though_o it_o be_v not_o understand_v but_o he_o himself_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o wherefore_o see_v there_o lack_v doctrine_n in_o the_o mass_n there_o lack_v one_o of_o the_o four_o substantial_a part_n but_o he_o will_v make_v the_o read_n of_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n in_o latin_a doctrine_n and_o good_a doctrine_n what_o doctrine_n that_o be_v by_o which_o the_o people_n be_v not_o teach_v let_v reasonable_a man_n judge_v for_o although_o all_o the_o mass_n be_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n 1._o cor._n 14._o because_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a for_o edify_v his_o childish_a sophism_n of_o plato_n his_o substance_n and_o his_o accident_n i_o disdain_v to_o rehearse_v the_o truth_n be_v manifest_a the_o second_o comparison_n s._n james_n speak_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n they_o in_o their_o mass_n suppress_v they_o and_o keep_v they_o
prelate_n in_o their_o life_n yet_o in_o this_o account_n of_o master_n heskin_n they_o be_v burgess_n of_o the_o low_a house_n and_o live_v much_o about_o a_o time_n to_o fill_v up_o the_o chapter_n he_o cite_v certain_a miracle_n report_v by_o saint_n cyprian_a sermon_n 5._o de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la to_o show_v how_o god_n punish_v the_o unworthy_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n although_o they_o do_v not_o all_o show_v it_o for_o the_o first_o example_n be_v of_o a_o infant_n that_o can_v not_o brook_v the_o sacramental_a wine_n after_o it_o have_v taste_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n offer_v to_o idol_n where_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o parent_n be_v rather_o punish_v then_o the_o unworthiness_n of_o the_o child_n the_o whole_a story_n be_v at_o large_a set_v down_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n the_o second_o example_n be_v of_o a_o woman_n who_o receive_v unworthy_o be_v strike_v with_o sudden_a death_n the_o three_o of_o a_o woman_n who_o keep_v the_o sacrament_n in_o her_o coffer_n and_o when_o she_o will_v with_o unworthy_a hand_n open_v the_o coffer_n in_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a thing_n of_o the_o lord_n there_o spring_v out_o a_o fire_n by_o which_o she_o be_v so_o terrify_v that_o she_o dare_v not_o touch_v it_o a_o just_a punishment_n for_o her_o reserve_n of_o that_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v receive_v the_o four_o miracle_n be_v of_o a_o man_n who_o presume_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n unworthy_o can_v never_o eat_v the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n nor_o handle_v it_o for_o when_o he_o have_v open_v his_o hand_n he_o see_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o ash_n this_o be_v a_o marvelous_a thing_n say_v master_n heskin_n whereby_o be_v declare_v that_o god_n be_v not_o willing_a that_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v receive_v of_o a_o filthy_a sinner_n for_o so_o much_o as_o sudden_o it_o please_v he_o to_o change_v it_o into_o ash_n he_o himself_o depart_v from_o it_o in_o deed_n this_o be_v a_o strange_a and_o miraculous_a transubstantiation_n but_o if_o i_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a to_o ask_v m._n heskins_n what_o be_v that_o which_o be_v change_v if_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n god_n he_o say_v be_v depart_v from_o it_o there_o remain_v the_o aceidente_n only_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o so_o belike_o the_o accident_n be_v change_v into_o ash_n oh_o monstrous_a mutation_n but_o why_o do_v not_o m._n hes._n gather_v by_o this_o miracle_n that_o if_o the_o sacrament_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v of_o a_o wicked_a man_n much_o less_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o do_v cyprian_n gather_v of_o it_o documento_fw-la unius_fw-la ostensum_fw-la est_fw-la dominum_fw-la recedere_fw-la cum_fw-la negatur_fw-la nec_fw-la immerentibus_fw-la prodesse_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la quod_fw-la sumitur_fw-la cum_fw-la gratia_fw-la salutaris_fw-la in_o cinerem_fw-la sanctitate_fw-la fugiente_fw-la mutetur_fw-la by_o example_n of_o this_o one_o it_o be_v show_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v depart_v when_o he_o be_v deny_v neither_o do_v that_o which_o be_v receive_v profit_n to_o salvation_n the_o unworthy_a person_n see_v the_o wholesome_a gift_n the_o holiness_n depart_v from_o it_o be_v change_v into_o ash_n cyprian_n gather_v by_o the_o change_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n before_o it_o be_v receive_v that_o christ_n depart_v from_o they_o that_o deny_v he_o and_o be_v not_o receive_v at_o all_o but_o m._n hes._n will_v learn_v forsooth_o what_o one_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n receive_v that_o profit_v &_o hurt_v he_o answer_v it_o can_v be_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n for_o they_o profit_v alike_o to_o all_o man_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n a_o wholesome_a conlusion_n by_o which_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v a_o hurtful_a thing_n but_o if_o it_o please_v he_o to_o understand_v our_o answer_n we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n include_v in_o the_o bread_n or_o wine_n that_o either_o profit_v or_o hurt_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o work_v as_o well_o by_o this_o sacrament_n our_o spiritual_a nourish_v as_o by_o baptism_n our_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o that_o which_o hurt_v the_o wicked_a man_n be_v in_o himself_o and_o not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n even_o his_o own_o wickedness_n and_o detestable_a presumption_n to_o defile_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o god_n wherefore_o it_o be_v devilish_a and_o blasphemous_a that_o m._n heskins_n affirm_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v hurtful_a to_o any_o because_o the_o unworthy_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n hurt_v he_o that_o receive_v by_o his_o own_o act_n and_o not_o by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v receive_v hesk._n the_o nine_o and_o fifty_o chapter_n treat_v of_o these_o word_n of_o saint_n paul._n we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n by_o irenaeus_n and_o hilarius_n fulk_n irenaeus_n be_v cite_v lib._n 5._o quomodo_fw-la carnem_fw-la negant_fw-la esse_fw-la capacem_fw-la etc_n etc_n how_o do_v they_o deny_v that_o the_o flesh_n be_v able_a to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o be_v eternal_a life_n which_o be_v nourish_v with_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o he_o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o that_o epistle_n which_o be_v to_o the_o ephesian_n because_o we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n speak_v this_o not_o of_o any_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a man_n for_o a_o spirit_n have_v neither_o flesh_n nor_o bone_n but_o of_o that_o disposition_n which_o be_v after_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n which_o consist_v of_o flesh_n and_o sinew_n and_o bone_n which_o be_v nourish_v of_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v his_o blood_n and_o be_v increase_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v his_o body_n that_o both_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v nourish_v unto_o eternal_a life_n by_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v most_o willing_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v but_o withal_o we_o affirm_v that_o as_o our_o body_n be_v not_o natural_o nourish_v and_o increase_v with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o spiritual_o after_o a_o divine_a manner_n so_o only_o spiritual_o and_o after_o a_o divine_a manner_n we_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o after_o a_o carnal_a natural_a or_o papistical_a manner_n and_o this_o be_v the_o plain_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o irenaeus_n his_o word_n as_o our_o body_n be_v natural_o nourish_v and_o increase_v with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o be_v our_o body_n and_o soul_n spiritual_o nourish_v and_o increase_v unto_o eternal_a life_n for_o m._n heskins_n himself_o deny_v that_o our_o body_n be_v natural_o nourish_v and_o increase_v with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o turn_v into_o our_o flesh_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v if_o we_o understand_v that_o irenaeus_n say_v our_o flesh_n be_v nourish_v and_o increase_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o of_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v his_o blood_n our_o flesh_n be_v nourish_v and_o increase_v therefore_o there_o be_v natural_a and_o very_a bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o our_o flesh_n can_v not_o be_v nourish_v and_o increase_v by_o accident_n even_o as_o certain_o as_o there_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n dispense_v unto_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n therefore_o also_o the_o wicked_a receive_v not_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v no_o member_n of_o his_o body_n that_o i_o have_v not_o in_o this_o interpretation_n vary_v from_o the_o mind_n of_o irenaeus_n his_o plain_a word_n shall_v testify_v lib._n 4._o cap._n 34._o quemadmodum_fw-la enim_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la terra_fw-la panis_fw-la percipiens_fw-la vocationem_fw-la dei_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la communis_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la eucharistia_n ex_fw-la duabus_fw-la rebus_fw-la constans_fw-la terrena_fw-la &_o coelesti_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o corpora_fw-la nostra_fw-la percipientia_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la corruptibilia_fw-la spem_fw-la resurrectionis_fw-la habentia_fw-la even_o as_o that_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n receive_v the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v not_o now_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n or_o sacrament_n of_o thanksgiving_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n a_o earthly_a thing_n and_o a_o heavenly_a thing_n so_o also_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o now_o corruptible_a have_v the_o hope_n of_o resurrection_n the_o place_n that_o master_n heskins_n cite_v out_o
the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n bear_v witness_n of_o himself_o for_o his_o own_o advantage_n be_v not_o to_o be_v credit_v in_o that_o epistle_n he_o show_v that_o acacius_n by_o lyra_n be_v condemn_v according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v lawful_a not_o only_o for_o he_o but_o for_o any_o other_o bishop_n to_o have_v do_v in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o invent_v no_o new_a heresy_n but_o do_v communicate_v with_o a_o other_o heresy_n already_o condemn_v in_o a_o council_n 38_o in_o the_o three_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n there_o be_v mention_n that_o cyrillus_n be_v precedent_n of_o the_o council_n but_o not_o that_o he_o be_v lieutenant_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n although_o euasius_fw-la a_o late_a writer_n in_o comparison_n do_v so_o suppose_v but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o denique_fw-la petrus_n &_o joannes_n aequalis_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la alterutrum_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la propter_fw-la quod_fw-la apostoli_fw-la &_o sancti_fw-la discipuli_fw-la esse_fw-la monstrantur_fw-la peter_n and_o john_n be_v of_o equal_a dignity_n one_o with_o the_o other_o because_o they_o be_v show_v to_o be_v apostle_n and_o holy_a disciple_n this_o confession_n of_o the_o council_n make_v more_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n than_o the_o lievetenantship_n of_o cyrillus_n to_o the_o pope_n if_o it_o be_v true_a can_v prove_v for_o it_o 39_o master_n saunder_n say_v without_o proof_n but_o of_o decline_a time_n almost_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o late_a that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v legate_n both_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a throughout_o all_o christendom_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a prove_v no_o more_o his_o supremacy_n then_o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v dominion_n over_o all_o those_o country_n where_o he_o have_v legate_n ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a he_o cite_v the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v that_o he_o may_v send_v a_o priest_n from_o his_o side_n which_o in_o deed_n be_v a_o restraint_n of_o his_o usurp_a authority_n and_o not_o a_o confirmation_n or_o a_o enlargement_n thereof_o for_o the_o canon_n be_v this_o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n that_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o country_n do_v appeal_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o next_o province_n to_o examine_v his_o cause_n and_o if_o the_o party_n by_o his_o opportunity_n shall_v move_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o second_o time_n to_o be_v hear_v again_o than_o he_o may_v send_v presbyterum_fw-la à_fw-la late_a a_o elder_a from_o his_o side_n one_o or_o more_o which_o either_o with_o the_o bishop_n aforesaid_a shall_v judge_v and_o determine_v the_o matter_n or_o else_o leave_v it_o whole_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n by_o this_o canon_n the_o singular_a authority_n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n be_v modest_o exclude_v 40_o the_o example_n of_o bishop_n perigenes_n and_o martinus_n translate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o decline_a time_n prove_v not_o the_o perpetual_a supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n see_v by_o general_a counsel_n all_o such_o translation_n have_v be_v forbid_v in_o elder_a time_n nic._n c._n 15._o chalc_n c._n 5._o 41_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o general_a counsel_n but_o that_o they_o be_v hold_v without_o he_o presence_n or_o his_o send_n for_o concern_v his_o personal_a presence_n he_o be_v not_o at_o any_o of_o the_o 4._o first_o approve_v general_a counsel_n neither_o any_o for_o he_o at_o the_o second_o of_o they_o which_o be_v hold_v at_o constantinople_n where_o nectarius_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n be_v precedent_n also_o the_o four_o of_o chalcedon_n make_v the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n equal_a with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o although_o leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n disallow_v yet_o do_v it_o take_v place_n as_o liberatus_n testify_v cap._n 13._o 42_o although_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v his_o legate_n in_o some_o provincial_a counsel_n yet_o it_o be_v great_a impudency_n to_o say_v he_o have_v they_o in_o al._n and_o such_o as_o then_o be_v present_a they_o bear_v no_o rule_n or_o pre-eminence_n but_o as_o the_o legate_n of_o other_o bishop_n philippus_n and_o asellius_n be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o aphrica_fw-la in_o which_o decree_n be_v make_v against_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o they_o subscribe_v cap._n 92_o 43_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v procure_v a_o few_o nation_n to_o be_v convert_v within_o these_o thousand_o or_o 900._o year_n as_o england_n by_o augustine_n saxoni_n by_o bonifacius_n etc_o etc_o it_o can_v not_o excuse_v he_o from_o be_v antichrist_n himself_o ▪_o although_o m._n saunder_n say_v we_o account_v he_o to_o be_v but_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n for_o though_o gregory_n otherwise_o a_o ceremonial_a and_o superstitious_a man_n be_v move_v with_o zeal_n of_o christ_n glory_n to_o seek_v the_o conversion_n of_o as_o many_o as_o he_o can_v yet_o the_o pope_n which_o follow_v after_o he_o in_o procure_v the_o conversion_n of_o some_o country_n rather_o by_o cruel_a war_n then_o by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n as_o prusia_n livonia_n lithuania_n etc_n etc_n seek_v their_o own_o glory_n and_o advantage_n under_o the_o colour_n of_o christ_n religion_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o divide_v against_o satan_n but_o join_v with_o he_o in_o hypocrisy_n 44_o as_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n in_o the_o new_a find_v land_n be_v a_o new_a find_v argument_n to_o prove_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n like_a as_o the_o conversion_n of_o elias_n the_o jew_n by_o pius_n 5._o many_o jew_n and_o some_o of_o great_a learning_n as_o emanuel_n tremelius_fw-la have_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o gospel_n and_o one_o within_o this_o two_o year_n be_v baptize_v in_o london_n 45_o that_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v so_o long_o flourish_v like_o a_o queen_n in_o worldly_a pomp_n it_o be_v the_o more_o like_a to_o the_o see_v and_o city_n of_o antichrist_n apoc._n 18._o verse_n 7._o and_o that_o the_o city_n of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o their_o bishop_n be_v oppress_v with_o infidel_n it_o let_v they_o not_o to_o be_v true_a christian_n for_o esaie_n 60._o prophesy_v not_o of_o worldly_a pomp_n but_o of_o the_o spiritual_a glory_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v as_o great_a before_o constantius_n stay_v the_o persecution_n as_o ever_o since_o 46_o that_o no_o bishop_n be_v ever_o so_o honour_v of_o prince_n king_n or_o emperor_n as_o the_o pope_n etc_o etc_o it_o prove_v he_o to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o church_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n apo._n 17._o vers_fw-la 2._o &_o 17._o &_o cap._n 13._o &_o 16._o 47_o that_o the_o frenchman_n depose_v their_o king_n childericus_fw-la by_o the_o oracle_n of_o pope_n zacharie_n which_o discharge_v they_o of_o their_o lawful_a oath_n of_o obedience_n it_o prove_v mighty_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n peter_n say_v fear_v god_n honour_v the_o king_n 1._o pet._n 2._o 48_o and_o much_o more_o that_o pope_n leo_n the_o three_o do_v transfer_v the_o empire_n itself_o into_o the_o west_n for_o peter_n command_v obedience_n to_o be_v give_v to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n whether_o to_o the_o king_n as_o to_o the_o most_o excellent_a or_o to_o those_o ruler_n that_o be_v send_v of_o he_o 1._o pet._n 2._o 49_o that_o pope_n gregory_n the_o five_o give_v a_o order_n for_o the_o election_n of_o the_o emperor_n confirm_v our_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n as_o also_o that_o nicholas_n the_o first_o threaten_v the_o emperor_n michael_n the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o the_o east_n whereof_o he_o by_o his_o proud_a rebellion_n and_o disobedience_n and_o divide_v the_o west_n part_n from_o it_o be_v a_o cause_n 50_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v continue_v in_o history_n with_o the_o reign_n of_o emperor_n and_o king_n it_o prove_v in_o deed_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v either_o very_a famous_a when_o it_o be_v govern_v of_o good_a bishop_n or_o infamous_a when_o it_o be_v degenerate_v into_o antichristian_a tyranny_n but_o this_o prove_v no_o more_o the_o authority_n thereof_o to_o be_v lawful_a or_o the_o religion_n good_a than_o the_o succession_n of_o heathen_a tyrant_n emperor_n king_n &_o great_a turk_n prove_v their_o religion_n true_a or_o their_o usurpation_n lawful_a as_o for_o the_o light_n of_o worldly_a fame_n that_o m.s._n boast_v of_o be_v spiritual_a darkness_n and_o not_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o luke_n 5._o no_o man_n light_v a_o candle_n etc_n etc_n
in_o reformation_n no_o doubt_n but_o there_o be_v mutual_a message_n between_o they_o the_o union_n and_o communion_n of_o our_o church_n with_o other_o particular_a church_n of_o god_n throughout_o the_o world_n be_v spiritual_a make_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o embassage_n or_o order_n take_v by_o man_n but_o the_o same_o be_v declare_v and_o show_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n full_o agree_v in_o all_o necessary_a article_n with_o they_o 91_o the_o public_a protestation_n and_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n do_v show_v our_o reconciliation_n and_o conjunction_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n without_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o we_o to_o exhibit_v any_o bill_n of_o submission_n to_o any_o singular_a person_n as_o have_v be_v use_v in_o case_n of_o particular_a discipline_n as_o in_o reconciliation_n of_o vrsarius_fw-la and_o valens_n to_o julius_n of_o rome_n maximus_n vrbanus_n &_o other_o to_o cyprian_a of_o carthage_n 92_o the_o realm_n do_v never_o submit_v itself_o to_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la or_o calvin_n but_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n as_o for_o offer_v of_o bill_n of_o submission_n to_o foreign_a bishop_n it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o christian_a discipline_n but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o any_o substance_n all_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n give_v their_o subscription_n to_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canturburie_n and_o other_o bishop_n for_o the_o departure_n out_o of_o the_o popish_a church_n into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o error_n of_o luther_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n it_o show_v we_o depend_v not_o upon_o any_o man_n further_o than_o his_o doctrine_n be_v true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god._n 93_o calvin_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la although_o they_o receive_v some_o light_n of_o understanding_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o luther_n yet_o come_v they_o not_o from_o he_o but_o be_v stir_v up_o of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v 94_o the_o realm_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n never_o purpose_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o calvin_n who_o although_o he_o mislike_v the_o title_n of_o supreme_a head_n in_o that_o sense_n which_o steven_n gardiner_n maintain_v it_o at_o ratisbone_n as_o though_o it_o give_v unto_o the_o king_n a_o absolute_a authority_n to_o do_v what_o he_o will_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o that_o sense_n that_o it_o be_v receive_v of_o king_n edward_n and_o understand_v of_o all_o godly_a man_n that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o high_a magistrate_n in_o the_o church_n as_o well_o for_o the_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a as_o civil_a matter_n he_o never_o do_v condemn_v it_o 95_o king_n edward_n retain_v that_o title_n in_o the_o godly_a sense_n above_o rehearse_v the_o church_n of_o england_n notwithstanding_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o the_o world_n 96_o when_o queen_n marie_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n she_o find_v the_o realm_n a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o she_o forsake_v and_o seek_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o bondage_n again_o to_o the_o antichristian_a see_v of_o rome_n which_o by_o mean_n of_o a_o legacy_n from_o the_o pope_n bring_v by_o cardinal_n poole_n long_o before_o attaint_v for_o treason_n against_o his_o prince_n and_o country_n be_v by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n yield_v unto_o although_o god_o reserve_v more_o than_o seven_o thousand_o that_o never_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n of_o rome_n whereof_o many_o be_v cruel_o put_v to_o death_n and_o suffer_v martyrdom_n the_o rest_n be_v persecute_v and_o by_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n escape_v out_o of_o that_o bloody_a and_o fiery_a persecution_n 97_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n can_v not_o be_v plant_v at_o rome_n in_o the_o day_n of_o claudius_n the_o emperor_n because_o that_o in_o the_o ten_o or_o eleven_o year_n of_o his_o empire_n peter_n be_v at_o antioch_n reprove_v by_o paul_n gala._n 2._o the_o last_o year_n or_o the_o first_o of_o nero_n s._n paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n from_o corinth_n where_o he_o tarry_v almost_o two_o year_n in_o which_o epistle_n he_o send_v salutation_n to_o six_o and_o twenty_o singular_a person_n beside_o diverse_a family_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v to_o salute_v peter_n if_o he_o have_v be_v there_o but_o admit_v that_o peter_n have_v a_o seat_n at_o rome_n yet_o the_o papacy_n have_v not_o continue_v from_o that_o time_n but_o since_o the_o day_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o which_o be_v more_o than_o 100l_n year_n after_o christ_n neither_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n continue_v without_o change_n as_o m._n sanders_n say_v these_o 1500._o year_n but_o be_v altogether_o in_o a_o manner_n change_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n therefore_o queen_n marie_n bring_v the_o realm_n to_o that_o church_n do_v not_o reconcile_v it_o to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o restore_v it_o to_o the_o slavery_n of_o the_o antichristian_a tyranny_n 98_o see_v the_o realm_n be_v now_o again_o return_v to_o the_o embrace_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n continue_v in_o all_o time_n though_o under_o persecution_n of_o antichrist_n and_o now_o open_o and_o public_o profess_v of_o many_o nation_n it_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o head_n and_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o all_o nation_n in_o all_o point_n of_o true_a religion_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o be_v no_o seismaticall_a church_n but_o a_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n 99_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o part_n be_v a_o invisible_a church_n and_o therefore_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o thing_n invisible_a heb._n 10._o and_o no_o church_n under_o a_o bushel_n but_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o we_o all_o gala._n 4._o contrariwise_o the_o popish_a church_n which_o be_v visible_a be_v the_o church_n of_o infidel_n and_o rome_n which_o be_v upon_o earth_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o antichristian_n 100_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n â–ª_o the_o celebrate_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o these_o exercise_n have_v always_o be_v in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v not_o hinder_v by_o persecution_n 101_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n and_o the_o church_n have_v have_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n from_o christ_n time_n unto_o luther_n age_n master_n saunder_n ask_v where_o they_o be_v through_o all_o nation_n as_o though_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o nation_n at_o all_o time_n popery_n when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o large_a have_v not_o teacher_n in_o all_o nation_n for_o many_o continue_v in_o barbarous_a gentilism_n beside_o mahometism_n which_o have_v fill_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v scatter_v in_o many_o nation_n and_o have_v have_v and_o now_o also_o have_v many_o king_n that_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n thereof_o and_o at_o this_o time_n more_o than_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v 102_o the_o true_a church_n in_o england_n be_v honour_v &_o nourish_v by_o the_o king_n who_o she_o honour_v as_o supreme_a governor_n head_n or_o ruler_n thereof_o and_o although_o ecclesiastical_a person_n pay_v subsidy_n unto_o their_o prince_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o prince_n and_o their_o courtier_n nourish_v by_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n as_o master_n saunder_n most_o slanderous_o report_v otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o subject_n shall_v contribute_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o their_o own_o defence_n 103_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v be_v in_o deed_n honourable_a and_o true_a and_o contain_v all_o that_o doctrine_n by_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v govern_v two_o thousand_o year_n before_o any_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v write_v when_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o long_a life_n of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o tradition_n may_v be_v certain_a the_o gospel_n also_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n before_o any_o of_o the_o four_o gospel_n be_v pen_v but_o yet_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v write_v and_o none_o other_o which_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o be_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o most_o certain_a rule_n to_o follow_v that_o
such_o opinion_n of_o have_v image_n in_o the_o church_n for_o heretical_a this_o bald_a reason_n he_o learn_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 2._o act_n 4._o of_o one_o epiphanius_n which_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o reject_v and_o control_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o ancient_a epiphanius_n of_o cypress_n but_o how_o false_o they_o have_v affirm_v this_o of_o he_o you_o may_v see_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o epiphanius_n book_n against_o heresy_n first_o lib._n 1._o tom._n 1._o he_o show_v the_o punishment_n of_o god_n against_o tharra_n a_o image_n maker_n which_o over_o live_v his_o son_n aran_n which_o no_o man_n as_o he_o say_v do_v before_o he_o second_o lib._n 1._o tom._n 2._o he_o show_v that_o simon_n magus_n the_o father_n of_o heretic_n make_v image_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o harlot_n helena_n to_o be_v worship_v &_o that_o carpocrats_n the_o heretic_n make_v the_o image_n of_o jesus_n and_o of_o s._n peter_n and_o do_v cense_v they_o and_o worship_v they_o also_o her._n 27._o he_o say_v gnostici_fw-la &_o carpocratitae_fw-la etc_n etc_n the_o gnostike_n and_o carpocratites_n have_v image_n paint_v in_o colour_n some_o also_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o other_o matter_n which_o they_o say_v be_v the_o image_n of_o jesus_n and_o that_o these_o image_n of_o jesus_n be_v make_v when_o he_o live_v among_o man_n under_o pontius_n pilate_n again_o lib._n 2._o t._n 1._o she_o 55._o he_o show_v that_o there_o be_v some_o in_o arabia_n robas_fw-la and_o edom_n which_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o moses_n and_o centra_fw-la cullyridianos_fw-la she_o 79._o which_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n he_o say_v vnde_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la etc_n etc_n how_o be_v not_o this_o desire_n of_o make_v image_n a_o devilish_a attempt_n prętextu_fw-la enim_fw-la justitię_n for_o the_o devil_n always_o enter_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n under_o pretence_n of_o righteousness_n deify_v the_o mortal_a nature_n in_o the_o ever_o be_v of_o man_n by_o variety_n of_o art_n have_v set_v forth_o stock_n or_o statue_n bear_v the_o image_n of_o man_n and_o they_o true_o which_o be_v worship_v by_o they_o be_v dead_a but_o they_o bring_v in_o their_o image_n to_o be_v worship_v which_o never_o live_v for_o they_o can_v be_v dead_a which_o never_o live_v final_o lib._n autorato_n prima_fw-la enim_fw-la scortatio_fw-la est_fw-la excogitatio_fw-la simulachrorum_fw-la inquit_fw-la scriptura_fw-la the_o invent_v of_o image_n be_v the_o first_o whoredom_n say_v the_o scripture_n by_o these_o place_n judge_v how_o true_a it_o be_v which_o damascen_n write_v that_o his_o own_o church_n be_v deck_v with_o image_n but_o yet_o m.s._n have_v another_o shift_n of_o descant_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o rend_v this_o vail_n may_v be_v for_o avoid_v of_o offence_n of_o the_o weak_a jew_n &_o pagan_n late_o convert_v in_o that_o place_n as_o though_o epiphanius_n do_v not_o plain_o declare_v the_o cause_n to_o have_v be_v for_o that_o it_o be_v contrari_fw-la to_o the_o scripture_n the_o like_a cause_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n in_o spain_n placuit_fw-la pict●ras_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la aut_fw-la adoratur_fw-la in_fw-la arietibut_fw-la depingatur_fw-la it_o be_v decree_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o picture_n in_o the_o church_n lest_o that_o which_o be_v worship_v &_o adore_v shall_v be_v paint_v on_o the_o wall_n but_o the_o canon_n itself_o show_v a_o reason_n why_o they_o will_v have_v no_o picture_n in_o the_o church_n lest_o god_n who_o only_o they_o worship_v &_o adore_v may_v be_v paint_v on_o the_o wall_n which_o be_v a_o abominable_a absurdity_n yet_o have_v be_v practise_v &_o i●_z defend_v man_n be_v so_o prone_a to_o idolatry_n but_o m.s._n gather_v that_o see_v there_o may_v be_v no_o picture_n in_o church_n ergo_fw-la they_o may_v be_v in_o private_a house_n &_o if_o they_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v in_o private_a house_n much_o more_o they_o may_v be_v permit_v in_o church_n a_o proper_a ringworm_n a_o doctor_n like_o argument_n by_o which_o i_o may_v conclude_v as_o follow_v there_o may_v be_v no_o shop_n in_o church_n ergo_fw-la they_o may_v be_v in_o private_a house_n and_o if_o they_o may_v be_v permit_v ●n_o private_a house_n much_o more_o in_o church_n but_o yet_o he_o have_v a_o other_o answer_n this_o fact_n of_o epiphanius_n be_v a_o private_a zeal_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o i_o reply_v it_o be_v a_o godly_a zeal_n because_o it_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o commandement_fw-fr of_o god_n &_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o which_o no_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o decree_v but_o the_o last_o answer_n be_v as_o good_a as_o cake_n &_o pudding_n which_o yet_o he_o think_v worthy_a of_o a_o note_n in_o the_o margin_n image_n can_v not_o be_v break_v before_o they_o be_v set_v up_o therefore_o the_o setter_n up_o of_o image_n be_v ancient_a &_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n then_o the_o puller_n down_o that_o be_v out_o of_o question_n even_o so_o heresy_n can_v not_o be_v confute_v before_o they_o be_v invent_v therefore_o the_o inventor_n of_o heresy_n be_v ancient_a &_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n then_o the_o confuter_n note_v you_o papist_n for_o your_o learning_n or_o else_o note_v that_o this_o note_n of_o master_n saunder_n be_v not_o worthy_a the_o note_n but_o he_o proceed_v and_o will_v prove_v as_o he_o say_v that_o as_o there_o be_v some_o image_n in_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o epiphanius_n so_o straight_o after_o his_o time_n they_o be_v common_a in_o all_o church_n but_o this_o straightway_o be_v almost_o 200._o year_n after_o epiphanius_n 493_o as_o he_o cite_v out_o of_o nicephorus_n of_o one_o xenias_n who_o he_o say_v be_v the_o first_o that_o speak_v against_o worship_v of_o image_n which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v all_o man_n that_o have_v read_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v know_v sufficient_o the_o next_o breaker_n of_o image_n he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v serenus_n bishop_n of_o marsiles_n 596._o who_o wa●_z reprove_v by_o pope_n gregory_n which_o write_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v break_v the_o image_n but_o prohibit_v the_o people_n from_o worship_v of_o they_o lib._n 7._o epist._n 169._o but_o m._n saunder_n will_v avoid_v that_o prohibition_n by_o the_o distinction_n of_o adoration_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n because_o gregory_n say_v lib._n 7._o epist_n 53._o scio_fw-la quod_fw-la etc_n etc_n i_o know_v that_o you_o desire_v not_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o this_o purpose_n to_o worship_v it_o as_o god_n by_o which_o word_n he_o mean_v that_o all_o worship_n be_v due_a unto_o god_n and_o that_o by_o worship_v a_o image_n it_o be_v make_v a_o false_a god._n but_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o epistle_n say_v m._n saunder_n which_o prove_v that_o gregory_n acknowledge_v some_o worship_n due_a to_o image_n nos_fw-la non_fw-la quasi_fw-la ante_fw-la divinitatem_fw-la ante_fw-la imaginem_fw-la proster_fw-la nimur_fw-la etc_n etc_n we_o fall_v not_o down_o before_o a_o image_n as_o before_o the_o godhead_n but_o we_o worship_v he_o who_o by_o the_o image_n we_o remember_v to_o have_v be_v bear_v or_o to_o have_v suffer_v and_o also_o to_o sit_v in_o the_o throne_n but_o these_o word_n import_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n except_o m._n saunder_n can_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o a_o image_n and_o to_o fall_v down_o unto_o a_o image_n although_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o they_o fall_v not_o down_o at_o all_o before_o any_o image_n but_o only_o use_v they_o for_o their_o remembrance_n m._n saunder_n continue_v his_o petegrue_a show_v that_o philippicus_n the_o emperor_n be_v a_o monothelite_n anno_fw-la 710._o throw_v down_o the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o six_o general_a counsel_n that_o be_v set_v in_o the_o church_n porch_n of_o sophia_n belike_o he_o be_v afraid_a they_o will_v come_v short_o into_o the_o church_n pope_n constantine_n cause_v the_o like_a picture_n to_o be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n porch_n of_o saint_n peter_n at_o rome_n and_o what_o of_o this_o forsooth_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n that_o throw_v down_o image_n so_o be_v pope_n honorius_n condemn_v for_o a_o monotholite_a archheretic_n in_o the_o seven_o general_a council_n that_o maintain_v image_n after_o he_o an._n 730._o leo_n persuade_v by_o two_o jew_n say_v the_o late_a idolatrous_a writer_n throw_v down_o the_o image_n at_o constantinople_n and_o anno_fw-la 740._o constantine_n his_o son_n a_o wicked_a man_n and_o a_o heretic_n follow_v he_o but_o under_o irene_n
examine_v these_o falsification_n pretend_v first_o he_o charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o false_a latine_a and_o worse_o english_n of_o this_o greek_a follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n latin_a be_v hoc_fw-la mirum_fw-la est_fw-la veteres_fw-la ethnicos_fw-la beneficio_fw-la affectos_fw-la a_o seruatore_fw-la nostro_fw-la ista_fw-la fecisse_fw-la his_o english_a this_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o heathen_n receive_v such_o benefit_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v these_o thing_n here_o say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d olympia_n in_o time_n past_a be_v leave_v out_o in_o the_o latin_a which_o be_v false_a for_o it_o be_v include_v in_o the_o word_n veteres_fw-la in_o deed_n in_o the_o english_a by_o the_o printer_n fault_n it_o be_v omit_v m._n saunder_n will_v justify_v the_o bold_a and_o false_a translation_n of_o ruffinus_n which_o turn_v these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d qui_fw-la ex_fw-la gentilibus_fw-la crediderant_fw-la such_o of_o the_o gentile_n as_o have_v believe_v where_o he_o manifest_o add_v the_o word_n crediderant_fw-la which_o be_v not_o in_o eusebius_n wherein_o you_o may_v see_v the_o equity_n of_o master_n sanders_n which_o find_v fault_n with_o master_n jewel_n for_o leave_v out_o that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o omit_v and_o justify_v ruffinus_n which_o do_v open_o add_v to_o the_o text_n but_o for_o all_o his_o trifle_n about_o word_n he_o show_v himself_o ignorant_a of_o the_o phrase_n for_o when_o he_o have_v wrangle_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v the_o latin_a of_o the_o greek_a word_n for_o word_n be_v this_o nec_fw-la mirum_fw-la est_fw-la eos_fw-la ex_fw-la gentibus_fw-la qui_fw-la olim_fw-la beneficio_fw-la affecti_fw-la sunt_fw-la a_o seruatore_fw-la nostro_fw-la ista_fw-la fecisse_fw-la and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_v that_o those_o of_o the_o gentile_n which_o of_o old_a time_n be_v benefit_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v do_v these_o thing_n now_o master_n saunder_n like_o a_o falsifier_n rend_v these_o word_n asunder_o and_o will_v have_v all_o that_o matter_n to_o stand_v in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o he_o say_v must_v needs_o signify_v those_o which_o in_o time_n past_a have_v be_v gentile_n but_o after_o have_v believe_v which_o word_n if_o he_o wring_v until_o the_o blood_n come_v forth_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o make_v such_o a_o signification_n of_o they_o for_o if_o eusebius_n have_v mean_v so_o he_o will_v have_v add_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o some_o word_n of_o like_a effect_n second_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o that_o sometime_o be_v gentile_n than_o those_o that_o of_o old_a time_n be_v gentile_n but_o that_o in_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o old_a time_n he_o have_v relation_n unto_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n three_o as_o master_n saunder_n himself_o afterward_o strive_v for_o the_o adverb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unchaungeablye_o to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o participle_n show_v himself_o a_o good_a grammarian_n so_o here_o divide_v the_o adverb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o participle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o join_v it_o with_o nothing_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o malicious_a wrangler_n and_o a_o shameless_a falsifier_n now_o where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n bestow_v any_o great_a cure_n upon_o those_o who_o shall_v have_v tarry_v still_o heathen_n because_o he_o more_o willing_o cure_v the_o soul_n than_o the_o body_n i_o answer_v the_o chief_a end_n of_o his_o cure_n be_v not_o for_o the_o private_a benefit_n of_o they_o that_o be_v cure_v but_o to_o show_v himself_o to_o all_o man_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o true_a physician_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n but_o m._n saunder_n reply_v though_o some_o be_v unkind_a as_o the_o 9_o leper_n luke_n 17._o yea_o some_o be_v careless_a of_o he_o as_o the_o man_n that_o have_v lie_v 38._o year_n in_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o blind_a man_n until_o he_o instuct_v they_o by_o his_o word_n john_n 5._o &_o 9_o yet_o those_o which_o do_v set_v up_o image_n in_o his_o honour_n be_v not_o unkind_a i_o answer_v they_o think_v to_o satisfy_v themselves_o with_o a_o vain_a superstitious_a and_o heathenish_a kind_n of_o remuneration_n three_o he_o say_v with_o theophylact_fw-mi a_o late_a writer_n that_o this_o woman_n which_o be_v faithful_a do_v set_v up_o this_o image_n but_o that_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o to_o be_v neither_o true_a nor_o like_v to_o be_v true_a but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o master_n jewel_n falsehood_n say_v he_o for_o he_o say_v moreover_o nam_n &_o apostolorum_fw-la pauli_n &_o petri_n &_o ipsius_fw-la christi_fw-la imagine_v coloribus_fw-la ductas_fw-la &_o seruatas_fw-la vidimus_fw-la for_o we_o have_v see_v the_o image_n of_o paul_n and_o peter_n and_o of_o christ_n draw_v in_o colour_n and_o preserve_v here_o first_o beside_o the_o lack_n of_o eius_fw-la he_o which_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o importance_n he_o miss_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d et_fw-fr which_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v to_o signify_v also_o what_o quarrel_v merchant_n be_v this_o here_o be_v et_fw-fr thrice_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o will_v serve_v his_o turn_n because_o the_o first_o be_v not_o translate_v also_o that_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o eusebius_n have_v see_v the_o former_a image_n of_o brass_n but_o see_v et_fw-fr be_v twice_o put_v once_o before_o apostolorum_fw-la and_o then_o before_o ipsius_fw-la christi_fw-la by_o judgement_n of_o all_o english_a grammarian_n it_o may_v true_o be_v translate_v thus_o for_o we_o have_v see_v the_o image_n draw_v in_o colour_n and_o preserve_v both_o of_o his_o apostle_n paul_n and_o peter_n and_o also_o of_o christ_n himself_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v translate_v even_o of_o his_o apostle_n paul_n and_o peter_n what_o empire_n have_v master_n saunder_n in_o grammar_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v signify_v nothing_o but_o also_o when_o it_o have_v three_o signification_n beside_o and_o both_o even_o but_o it_o please_v master_n saunder_n that_o eusebius_n which_o live_v about_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n see_v paint_v image_n of_o christ_n himself_o &_o of_o his_o apostle_n yea_o but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o heathen_a man_n or_o man_n of_o heathenish_a superstition_n or_o else_o perhaps_o among_o the_o gnostike_n &_o carpocratites_n heretic_n for_o what_o one_o word_n of_o commendation_n do_v he_o bestow_v upon_o they_o he_o see_v they_o in_o deed_n but_o if_o they_o have_v be_v profitable_a for_o christianity_n why_o do_v he_o not_o make_v the_o like_a or_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v make_v in_o his_o church_n of_o caesarea_n what_o cause_n have_v you_o hitherto_o m._n saunder_n to_o cry_v out_o oh_o the_o deceit_n of_o m._n jewel_n see_v for_o any_o thing_n you_o have_v show_v it_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v the_o phaeniciens_fw-la be_v heathen_n make_v these_o image_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n only_o of_o their_o heathenish_a and_o vain_a superstition_n but_o you_o will_v show_v a_o further_a falsehood_n in_o m._n jewel_n and_o that_o still_o in_o one_o story_n for_o he_o proceed_v et_fw-la credibile_fw-la est_fw-la priscos_fw-la illos_fw-la homines_fw-la nondum_fw-la relicta_fw-la avita_fw-la superstition_n ▪_o adhunc_fw-la modum_fw-la consuevisse_fw-la colere_fw-la illos_fw-la ethnica_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la tanquam_fw-la seruatores_fw-la and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v that_o man_n in_o old_a time_n be_v not_o yet_o remove_v from_o the_o superstition_n of_o their_o father_n use_v after_o this_o sort_n to_o worship_v they_o by_o a_o heathenish_a custom_n as_o their_o saviour_n that_o m._n jewel_n mean_v no_o fraud_n in_o this_o translation_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o that_o which_o m._n saunder_n confess_v that_o he_o set_v the_o greek_a word_n by_o the_o side_n of_o his_o book_n which_o be_v these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v as_o it_o be_v like_a that_o those_o ancient_a man_n unchangable_o after_o this_o manner_n be_v accustom_v to_o honour_v they_o as_o saviour_n by_o a_o heathenish_a custom_n use_v among_o they_o this_o i_o have_v translate_v word_n for_o word_n and_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o in_o sense_n from_o m._n jewel_n translation_n but_o that_o nothing_o of_o he_o can_v please_v m._n san._n for_o first_o he_o make_v one_o quarrel_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v unchangable_o or_o without_o change_n which_o m._n jewel_n have_v turn_v not_o yet_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o superstition_n of_o their_o father_n but_o ruffinus_n also_o translate_v it_o ex_fw-la gentili_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la indifferenter_fw-la of_o a_o heathenish_a custom_n indifferent_o and_o m._n
to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n for_o the_o make_n of_o your_o popish_a image_n and_o the_o day_n be_v you_o the_o 7._o the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n and_o gad_n and_o the_o half_a tribe_n of_o manasses_n make_v a_o image_n of_o a_o altar_n jos._n 22._o nay_o they_o make_v a_o altar_n in_o deed_n for_o a_o memorial_n &_o yet_o their_o fact_n be_v not_o commendable_a though_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n excusable_a the_o 8._o god_n command_v two_o cherubim_n to_o be_v make_v over_o the_o mercy_n seat_n exod._n 25._o those_o be_v grave_v angel_n say_v m._n saunder_n of_o the_o high_a degree_n in_o heaven_n save_o one_o oh_o vain_a presumptuous_a hypocrite_n that_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o know_v the_o degree_n of_o angel_n which_o the_o scripture_n have_v never_o reveal_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v as_o to_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n show_v the_o word_n of_o god_n dispense_n with_o the_o general_a law_n for_o any_o image_n in_o religion_n the_o rend_n of_o the_o veil_n a_o sunder_o show_v we_o not_o the_o image_n of_o cherubim_n as_o on_o the_o ark_n he_o say_v much_o less_o other_o new_a image_n which_o be_v never_o there_o but_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n with_o uncover_v face_n while_o we_o ourselves_o be_v transform_v into_o the_o same_o image_n 2._o cor._n 3._o ver_fw-la 18._o the_o 9_o the_o temple_n be_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n open_o set_v up_o before_o their_o eye_n the_o temple_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n so_o be_v every_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v but_o no_o image_n the_o 10._o the_o temple_n be_v honour_v by_o the_o jew_n yea_o &_o daniel_n pray_v towards_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o temple_n be_v destroy_v you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v they_o honour_v jerusalem_n no_o doubt_n but_o the_o temple_n be_v reverent_o esteem_v of_o the_o godly_a as_o a_o place_n erect_v by_o god_n commandment_n which_o see_v image_n do_v lack_v there_o pass_v no_o consequence_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o the_o honour_v of_o image_n the_o 11._o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v &_o not_o the_o self_n image_n of_o thing_n he._n 10._o therefore_o if_o the_o dumb_a shadow_n of_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v much_o more_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o body_n of_o those_o who_o will_v perform_v that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v prefigure_v in_o the_o law_n who_o can_v bear_v these_o blasphemy_n do_v the_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n prefigure_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n or_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n be_v your_o dumb_a stock_n and_o stone_n that_o self_n image_n or_o pattern_n of_o those_o shadow_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o or_o be_v christ_n himself_o oh_o brazen_a forehead_n and_o blasphemous_a mouth_n the_o 12._o god_n honour_n be_v give_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o unity_n in_o person_n with_o the_o godhead_n therefore_o the_o image_n may_v be_v honour_v in_o a_o other_o respect_n but_o every_o respect_n thou_o blunder_a idolater_n can_v make_v a_o cause_n of_o honour_n but_o only_o the_o unity_n in_o person_n which_o see_v it_o be_v not_o in_o thy_o block_n with_o the_o pattern_n thine_o argument_n prove_v nothing_o the_o 13._o the_o image_n of_o caesar_n in_o his_o coin_n prove_v that_o it_o may_v be_v give_v to_o cęsar_n so_o do_v every_o image_n lead_v we_o to_o that_o truth_n whereof_o it_o be_v a_o image_n no_o master_n saunder_n the_o image_n of_o caesar_n on_o his_o coin_n prove_v that_o the_o jew_n be_v subject_a to_o caesar_n and_o therefore_o tribute_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o so_o your_o argument_n have_v no_o deduction_n from_o caesar_n image_n the_o 14._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v for_o amelech_n be_v overthrow_v by_o that_o sign_n which_o moses_n make_v when_o he_o pray_v with_o his_o hand_n lift_v up_o and_o spread_v abroad_o exod._n 17._o therefore_o we_o may_v and_o must_v honour_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o what_o matter_n or_o stuff_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v make_v vanity_n of_o vanity_n and_o nothing_o but_o vanity_n where_o be_v there_o any_o one_o title_n in_o that_o chapter_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o cross_n yea_o or_o of_o the_o spread_a of_o his_o hand_n abroad_o which_o shall_v make_v a_o cross_n with_o his_o lift_n up_o the_o 15._o the_o sign_n of_o thou_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o cross_n be_v mark_v in_o the_o forehead_n of_o such_o as_o hate_a idolatry_n ezech._n 9_o and_o they_o be_v not_o slay_v corporal_o no_o more_o shall_v they_o be_v slay_v everlasting_o which_o now_o embrace_v it_o a_o easy_a way_n to_o escape_v everlasting_a death_n but_o where_o find_v you_o that_o the_o sign_n of_o thou_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n or_o that_o the_o print_n of_o the_o letter_n thou_o be_v set_v on_o their_o forhead_n for_o this_o word_n thou_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o a_o mark_n or_o sign_n and_o not_o a_o special_a figure_n or_o mark_n although_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n do_v not_o translate_v it_o but_o set_v it_o in_o the_o hebrew_n word_n as_o he_o find_v it_o the_o 16._o the_o sign_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v appear_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n mat._n 24._o which_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o master_n saunder_n or_o if_o you_o can_v prove_v it_o what_o be_v that_o to_o worship_v of_o image_n ▪_o you_o say_v it_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o confusion_n of_o they_o which_o have_v throw_v down_o that_o sign_n but_o you_o only_o say_v it_o and_o then_o we_o force_v not_o yea_o say_v you_o a_o thousand_o time_n what_o say_v i_o a_o thousand_o everlasting_o accurse_v be_v he_o that_o hate_v or_o destroy_v any_o one_o jot_n belong_v to_o christ_n be_v it_o never_o so_o far_o distant_a from_o his_o holy_a flesh_n and_o person_n then_o how_o many_o time_n accurse_v be_v they_o that_o have_v destroy_v so_o many_o bible_n in_o which_o be_v not_o ten_o thousand_o jot_n belong_v to_o christ_n but_o his_o whole_a doctrine_n perfect_o contain_v the_o 17._o the_o people_n act._n 5._o covet_v to_o lie_v only_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o s._n peter_n shadow_n the_o woman_n desire_v to_o touch_v but_o the_o hem_n of_o christ_n garment_n why_o because_o any_o thing_n of_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o estimation_n very_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v somewhat_o of_o his_o or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o his_o image_n no_o very_o m._n san._n the_o image_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o of_o his_o true_o but_o false_o nothing_o to_o his_o honour_n but_o to_o his_o dishonour_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v none_o of_o he_o &_o yet_o we_o say_v these_o be_v his_o enemy_n but_o you_o say_v if_o a_o man_n have_v that_o faith_n as_o to_o believe_v that_o if_o he_o may_v touch_v or_o only_o see_v his_o image_n he_o shall_v be_v safe_a i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o that_o faith_n may_v not_o make_v he_o safe_a oh_o blind_a beast_n or_o rather_o block_n that_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v never_o hear_v out_o of_o god_n word_n shall_v not_o save_v a_o man_n but_o the_o heretic_n you_o say_v tie_v all_o thing_n to_o his_o person_n and_o nothing_o to_o his_o other_o instrument_n the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o to_o tie_v all_o thing_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v none_o other_o instrument_n than_o he_o have_v provide_v and_o appoint_v for_o we_o for_o image_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o of_o christ_n to_o work_v by_o the_o last_o all_o that_o ever_o isai_n cap._n 2._o jeremy_n cap._n 50._o ezechiel_n cap._n 30._o micheas_n cap._n 1._o sophonias_n cap._n 2._o zacharie_n cap._n 13._o or_o king_n david_n in_o psal._n 9_o say_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o idol_n in_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n be_v utter_o void_a &_o of_o none_o effect_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o worship_n or_o adore_v image_n do_v you_o not_o marvel_v what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o monstrous_a assertion_n very_o even_o as_o monstrous_a a_o lie_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o temple_n &_o chapel_n always_o &_o especial_o since_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a have_v set_v up_o and_o use_v reverent_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o saint_n what_o answer_n shall_v i_o make_v to_o this_o let_v he_o have_v the_o whetstone_n as_o big_a as_o a_o mountain_n the_o xiii_o or_o xii_o chap._n that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o healthful_a cross_n be_v honour_v in_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o of_o those_o two_o gross_a ignorance_n
better_a than_o a_o piece_n of_o brass_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o blasphemous_a against_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o hear_v his_o reason_n christ_n vouchsafe_v to_o segregate_v it_o from_o other_o wood_n to_o make_v it_o the_o instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n where_o find_v you_o that_o christ_n do_v choose_v his_o cross_n i_o think_v it_o be_v rather_o appoint_v to_o he_o by_o the_o jew_n then_o provide_v by_o himself_o if_o you_o say_v he_o do_v segregate_v it_o in_o his_o secret_a determination_n i_o answer_v that_o so_o he_o do_v segregate_v judas_n annas_n caiphas_n pilate_n the_o jew_n and_o soldier_n to_o be_v instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o yet_o none_o of_o they_o therefore_o to_o be_v regard_v or_o worship_v except_o of_o those_o detestable_a heretic_n that_o think_v they_o be_v profitable_a instrument_n of_o our_o redemption_n but_o oh_o holy_a sword_n &_o axe_n of_o tyrant_n and_o tormentor_n that_o be_v imbrue_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o martyr_n oh_o holy_a fire_n that_o burn_v they_o oh_o holy_a water_n that_o drown_v they_o oh_o holy_a gallows_n and_o rope_n that_o hang_v they_o for_o why_o shall_v not_o these_o also_o have_v their_o regard_n and_o worship_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o their_o desert_n who_o eternal_a felicity_n they_o be_v instrument_n to_o procure_v yet_o once_o again_o m._n jewel_n be_v challenge_v for_o deny_v the_o cognisance_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o flag_n banner_n or_o target_n to_o be_v image_n also_o the_o letter_n that_o ezechiel_n see_v in_o vision_n the_o cross_n that_o constantine_n see_v in_o the_o air_n the_o mark_n in_o man_n garment_n and_o the_o mystical_a letter_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o serapis_n first_o touch_v the_o mark_n which_o ezechiel_n see_v it_o be_v not_o describe_v of_o what_o figure_n it_o be_v only_o that_o a_o mark_n be_v set_v for_o tau_n signify_v a_o mark_n and_o not_o only_o the_o name_n of_o a_o letter_n which_o in_o that_o time_n perhaps_o it_o have_v not_o &_o so_o do_v s._n cyprian_n read_v it_o contra_fw-la demetrianum_n transi_fw-la mediam_fw-la jerusalem_n &_o notabis_fw-la signum_fw-la super_fw-la frontes_fw-la virorum_fw-la go_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o thou_o shall_v mark_v a_o sign_n upon_o the_o forehead_n of_o the_o man_n the_o sign_n that_o constantine_n see_v be_v the_o character_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n in_o two_o letter_n x_o &_o pea_n after_o this_o manner_n as_o both_o euseb._n witness_v and_o his_o coin_n yet_o remain_v do_v show_v ☧_o eu._n de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr con._n lib._n 1._o and_o therefore_o no_o cross_n nor_o sign_n thereof_o the_o mark_n that_o have_v appear_v in_o man_n garment_n perhaps_o be_v imagine_v rather_o they_o image_n as_o child_n imagine_v dragon_n &_o griffin_n in_o the_o cloud_n the_o mystical_a letter_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o idol_n serapis_n can_v have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o idolater_n know_v not_o therefore_o the_o folly_n of_o those_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n be_v bewray_v that_o think_v christianity_n much_o help_v by_o such_o heathenish_a &_o superstitious_a fantasy_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v as_o m._n jewel_n that_o they_o be_v but_o bar_v lay_v one_o over_o a_o other_o and_o no_o image_n yet_o m._n san._n marvel_v what_o blind_a ignorance_n this_o be_v so_o to_o say_v but_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n more_o plain_a on_o his_o side_n he_o make_v the_o shape_n of_o christ_n hang_v with_o his_o arm_n abroad_o all_o one_o with_o these_o sign_n or_o character_n aforesaid_a which_o be_v no_o blind_a ignorance_n but_o wilful_a abuse_n of_o his_o reader_n without_o all_o shame_n or_o shape_n of_o honesty_n and_o yet_o he_o will_v baffle_v we_o with_o a_o doughty_a definition_n of_o a_o image_n as_o he_o say_v out_o of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n that_o every_o similitude_n likeness_n or_o shape_n of_o one_o thing_n take_v out_o according_a to_o the_o sampler_n of_o a_o other_o thing_n be_v a_o image_n &_o then_o he_o run_v out_o into_o his_o old_a common_a place_n of_o inward_a imagination_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o sir_n who_o ever_o in_o those_o day_n or_o in_o we_o see_v the_o cross_n that_o christ_n die_v on_o to_o make_v a_o image_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o sampler_n if_o none_o but_o the_o painter_n or_o grave_a have_v imagine_v it_o then_o be_v it_o a_o image_n of_o a_o imagination_n which_o be_v the_o sampler_n thereof_o and_o not_o of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o be_v counterfeit_a and_o consequent_o by_o your_o own_o distinction_n a_o idol_n and_o in_o very_a deed_n so_o many_o diverse_a figure_n and_o form_n thereof_o as_o we_o see_v to_o be_v make_v argue_v that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a truth_n know_v unto_o man_n of_o what_o form_n or_o figure_v it_o be_v for_o some_o make_v it_o headless_a thus_o ✚_o some_o draw_n one_o bar_n through_o the_o other_o thus_o ✚_o some_o draw_v this_o bar_n at_o the_o upper_a end_n some_o through_o the_o midst_n some_o make_v circle_n some_o square_n some_o triangle_n at_o the_o four_o end_n some_o make_v they_o blunt_a some_o make_v they_o sharp_a etc_n etc_n some_o make_v the_o cross_a ragged_a some_o even_o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n and_o if_o all_o these_o be_v image_n of_o christ_n cross_n it_o skill_v not_o what_o proportion_n be_v keep_v in_o make_v of_o image_n according_a to_o the_o pattern_n hitherto_o therefore_o m._n san._n fond_a argument_n to_o prove_v worship_v of_o image_n by_o m._n jewel_n confession_n have_v no_o force_n to_o enter_v into_o any_o reasonable_a man_n credit_n because_o he_o have_v neither_o prove_v these_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v image_n nor_o such_o regard_n as_o m._n jewel_n confess_v to_o have_v be_v a_o worship_v of_o they_o in_o that_o sense_n that_o the_o controversy_n be_v between_o we_o for_o worship_v of_o image_n but_o whearas_o master_n jewel_n say_v the_o same_o cross_n be_v not_o set_v up_o in_o any_o temple_n master_n saunder_n confess_v not_o the_o same_o but_o other_o such_o as_o they_o be_v for_o proof_n whereof_o he_o cite_v a_o new_a find_v old_a doctor_n call_v euodius_n bishop_n of_o vzal_n in_o africa_n write_v about_o s._n august_n time_n a_o book_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n stephen_n in_o which_o he_o say_v s._n stephen_n image_n be_v paint_v with_o a_o cross_n on_o his_o shoulder_n etc_o etc_o this_o old_a doctor_n be_v first_o paint_v at_o lovan_n anno_fw-la 1564._o but_o he_o come_v too_o late_o to_o claim_v his_o antiquity_n after_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n in_o which_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o writing_n be_v ever_o hear_v off_o that_o the_o people_n be_v teach_v to_o kneel_v down_o to_o cross_n which_o master_n jewel_n deny_v he_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o probianus_n 19_o of_o who_o sozomenus_n in_o the_o tripartite_a history_n do_v write_v that_o be_v sometime_o a_o pagan_n but_o afterward_o make_v a_o christian_n he_o do_v in_o some_o part_n follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o he_o will_v not_o adore_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o our_o health_n that_o be_v the_o most_o holy_a cross_n he_o be_v of_o this_o mind_n the_o divine_a power_n appear_v to_o he_o and_o show_v he_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n set_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o that_o church_n and_o do_v manifest_o declare_v that_o since_o christ_n be_v crucify_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v for_o the_o utility_n of_o mankind_n have_v not_o be_v do_v by_o any_o mean_n without_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o reverend_a cross_n neither_o of_o holy_a angel_n nor_o of_o godly_a man_n here_o say_v master_n saunder_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o alter_v of_o s._n michael_n church_n in_o constantinople_n yea_o sir_n in_o that_o vision_n if_o it_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v small_a evidence_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o church_n in_o deed_n for_o if_o it_o have_v stand_v on_o the_o altar_n in_o such_o honourable_a estimation_n probianus_n will_v not_o have_v contemn_v it_o before_o but_o where_o you_o say_v he_o be_v count_v no_o perfect_a christian_n because_o he_o will_v not_o adore_v the_o holy_a cross_n of_o christ_n you_o walk_v still_o under_o your_o cloud_n of_o ambiguity_n for_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o the_o adoration_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o kneel_v to_o the_o cross_n which_o the_o bishop_n deny_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v it_o seem_v that_o probianus_n new_o convert_v from_o paganism_n have_v not_o yet_o that_o honourable_a estimation_n of_o the_o reproachful_a sign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o time_n have_v but_o whereas_o m._n jewel_n upbraid_v they_o with_o
that_o blasphemous_a prayer_n which_o they_o make_v to_o the_o cross_n kneel_v on_o their_o knee_n oh_o crux_fw-la ave_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la all-hail_n oh_o cross_n our_o only_a hope_n m._n saunder_n say_v those_o word_n do_v so_o convince_v his_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o they_o you_o have_v need_n m._n sa._n to_o set_v a_o good_a face_n on_o those_o word_n even_o of_o the_o same_o metal_n that_o your_o cross_n to_o who_o you_o speak_v be_v oftentimes_o make_v but_o what_o herculian_a argument_n i_o pray_v you_o do_v you_o bring_v forth_o forsooth_o s._n paul_n use_v the_o same_o phrase_n when_o he_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_v but_o only_o in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n but_o good_a sir_n s._n paul_n speak_v neither_o to_o the_o wooden_a cross_n nor_o of_o the_o sign_n thereof_o but_o of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o you_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o you_o do_v so_o namely_o that_o you_o say_v not_o those_o word_n to_o the_o cross_n but_o to_o christ_n crucify_v thus_o you_o will_v cover_v your_o shame_n with_o impudency_n but_o you_o can_v so_o escape_v for_o thomas_n aquinas_n a_o great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o your_o church_n 3._o sen._n di_o 9.91_o be_v 2_o q._n 4._o affirm_v that_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o s●me_n latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n that_o christ_n crucify_v be_v to_o be_v worship_v &_o that_o even_o unto_o the_o cross_n you_o speak_v when_o you_o say_v all_o hail_n oh_o cross_n our_o only_a hope_n and_o if_o you_o will_v say_v this_o be_v but_o one_o doctor_n opinion_n yet_o the_o very_a word_n of_o that_o hymn_n and_o the_o rubric_n thereof_o shall_v convince_v you_o that_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n beata_fw-la cvius_fw-la brachijs_fw-la preci●on_fw-la pependit_fw-la sęculi_fw-la flatera_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la corpori_fw-la prędamque_fw-la tulit_fw-la tartari_fw-la bless_a be_v that_o cross_n on_o who_o arm_n the_o price_n of_o the_o world_n do_v hang_v it_o be_v make_v a_o beam_n to_o weigh_v his_o body_n &_o take_v the_o pray_v away_o from_o hell_n immediate_o after_o these_o word_n the_o rubric_n bid_v the_o choir_n turn_v to_o the_o altar_n where_o the_o cross_n stand_v as_o m._n saunder_n say_v and_o then_o follow_v these_o word_n all_o hail_n oh_o across_o our_o only_a hope_n in_o this_o time_n of_o passion_n increase_v rightehusnesse_n to_o godly_a man_n &_o give_v pardon_n to_o guilty_a person_n by_o these_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o prayer_n be_v make_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n neither_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n like_o to_o the_o phrase_n which_o s._n paul_n use_v of_o glory_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ._n and_o that_o master_n saunder_n need_v not_o to_o make_v the_o matter_n so_o strange_a of_o their_o speak_n to_o the_o cross_n this_o hymn_n sing_v on_o the_o exaltation_n day_n and_o so_o often_o repeat_v in_o anthem_n and_o versicle_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v crux_fw-la fidelis_fw-la inter_fw-la omnes_fw-la arbour_n una_fw-la nobilis_fw-la nulla_fw-la silua_fw-la talem_fw-la prosert_fw-la frond_n floor_n germine_fw-la dulce_fw-la lignum_fw-la dulces_fw-la clavos_fw-la dulce_fw-la pondus_fw-la sustinens_fw-la sola_fw-la digna_fw-la tu_fw-la fuisti_fw-la far_o precium_fw-la saeculi_fw-la atque_fw-la portum_fw-la preparare_fw-la nauta_fw-la mundo_fw-la naufrago_fw-la quem_fw-la facer_n cruor_fw-la perunxit_fw-la fusus_fw-la agni_fw-la corpore_fw-la oh_o faithful_a across_o the_o only_a noble_a tree_n among_o all_o no_o grove_n bring_v forth_o such_o a_o tree_n in_o leaf_n in_o flower_n in_o bud_n bear_v that_o sweet_a wood_n those_o sweet_a nail_n that_o sweet_a weight_n thou_o only_o have_v be_v worthy_a to_o bear_v the_o price_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v a_o mariner_n to_o prepare_v a_o haven_n for_o the_o world_n that_o make_v shipwreck_n which_o the_o holy_a blood_n shed_v out_o of_o the_o lamb_n body_n have_v anoint_v what_o insensible_a block_n be_v they_o that_o prate_v thus_o to_o and_o of_o a_o insensible_a stock_n but_o to_o justify_v the_o former_a blasphemous_a hymn_n master_n saunder_n will_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v make_v of_o old_a time_n either_o of_o hilary_n ambrose_n fortunatus_n sedulius_n prudentius_n or_o gregory_n or_o else_o he_o can_v tell_v of_o who_o or_o when_o but_o what_o be_v his_o reason_n trow_v you_o marry_o because_o it_o do_v concern_v the_o holy_a time_n of_o lent_n and_o be_v receive_v not_o only_o in_o england_n but_o also_o in_o italy_n france_n and_o spain_n oh_o invincible_a reason_n it_o be_v not_o for_o naught_o that_o he_o brag_v that_o master_n jewel_n shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v ground_v on_o these_o word_n the_o last_o writer_n cite_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v chrysostom_n hom._n de_fw-fr adorat_fw-la cruc_fw-la say_n hodiernus_fw-la dies_fw-la pre●iosae_fw-la crucis_fw-la venerationi_fw-la constitutus_fw-la est_fw-la this_o day_n be_v appoint_v to_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o precious_a cross_n admodum_fw-la beati_fw-la ij_o qui_fw-la castis_fw-la labijs_fw-la sanctoque_fw-la ore_fw-la eam_fw-la ut_fw-la amplexantur_fw-la exeunt_fw-la very_o bless_v be_v they_o that_o go_v forth_o with_o chaste_a lip_n and_o holy_a mouth_n to_o kiss_v it_o but_o what_o a_o mockery_n be_v this_o that_o those_o word_n which_o this_o author_n speak_v allegorical_o of_o the_o spiritual_a cross_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o death_n and_o redemption_n of_o christ_n which_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o with_o all_o honour_n it_o be_v to_o be_v embrace_v shall_v be_v draw_v to_o a_o wooden_a image_n of_o i_o can_v tell_v what_o cross_n to_o be_v worship_v lick_v and_o kiss_v for_o it_o follow_v immediate_o re_n enim_fw-la vera_fw-la illud_fw-la domini_fw-la verbum_fw-la implent_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la i_o sequi_fw-la velit_fw-la seipsum_fw-la abneges_fw-la tollatquecrucem_fw-la svam_fw-la et_fw-la i_o sequatur_fw-la for_o they_o do_v in_o very_a deed_n fulfil_v that_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n if_o any_o man_n will_v follow_v i_o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o &_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n &_o follow_v i_o and_o expound_v what_o cross_n he_o mean_v he_o say_v a_o ut_fw-la lignum_fw-la unusquis_fw-la quae_fw-la nostrum_fw-la ferat_fw-la certè_fw-la non_fw-la que_fw-fr enim_fw-la hęc_fw-la virtus_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la pericula_fw-la instructi_fw-la simus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la in_o animus_fw-la nostris_fw-la suum_fw-la ferentes_fw-la ad_fw-la cędem_fw-la et_fw-la mortem_fw-la quotidie_fw-la parati_fw-la ita_fw-la omne_fw-la faciamus_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la ad_fw-la vesperum_fw-la nos_fw-la victuros_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la speraremus_fw-la what_o do_v he_o command_v every_o on_o of_o we_o to_o bear_v a_o piece_n of_o wood_n no_o sure_o for_o what_o virtue_n be_v that_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v furnish_v against_o danger_n and_o carry_v about_o his_o blood_n in_o our_o mind_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v slay_v &_o to_o die_v and_o so_o do_v all_o thing_n as_o if_o we_o hope_v not_o to_o live_v until_o the_o evening_n chrysostom_n also_o in_o many_o other_o place_n speak_v magnifical_o of_o the_o cross_n but_o then_o he_o mean_v the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n he_o commend_v also_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o yet_o with_o out_o any_o adoration_n of_o it_o of_o the_o cross_n he_o say_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la colloss_n hom._n 3._o deo_fw-la reconciliavit_fw-la per_fw-la seipsum_fw-la per_fw-la mortem_fw-la per_fw-la crucem_fw-la papè_fw-la quomodo_fw-la illa_fw-la rursus_fw-la commiscuit_fw-la etenim_fw-la ne_fw-la putares_fw-la unum_fw-la esse_fw-la neque_fw-la crucem_fw-la aliquid_fw-la esse_fw-la iuxta_fw-la seipsam_fw-la per_fw-la seipsum_fw-la dicit_fw-la he_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o god_n by_o himself_o by_o his_o death_n by_o his_o cross_n good_a lord_n how_o he_o have_v again_o join_v these_o together_o for_o that_o thou_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o they_o be_v one_o nor_o that_o the_o cross_n be_v any_o thing_n by_o itself_o he_o say_v by_o himself_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o call_v the_o sign_n of_o death_n to_o put_v the_o people_n in_o remembrance_n not_o only_o of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o their_o own_o suffer_v &_o patience_n so_o far_o he_o be_v of_o from_o set_v up_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n to_o be_v adore_v or_o kneel_v unto_o that_o gross_a idolatry_n have_v not_o prevail_v in_o his_o time_n nor_o long_o after_o the_o xiiii_o or_o xiii_o chap._n that_o other_o holy_a image_n both_o may_v be_v adore_v profitable_o and_o without_o jewish_a bondage_n by_o s._n augustine_n own_o doctrine_n saunder_n and_o also_o be_v adore_v within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n with_o a_o defence_n of_o s._n chrisostomes_n liturgy_n against_o m._n jewel_n also_o that_o the_o general_a doctrine_n of_o
we_o be_v utter_o discharge_v of_o image_n this_o man_n freedom_n be_v to_o bind_v we_o to_o the_o service_n of_o image_n oh_o blasphemous_a &_o absurd_a doctrine_n again_o how_o false_o do_v he_o affirm_v that_o the_o godly_a jew_n know_v not_o whereunto_o their_o sign_n be_v refer_v as_o though_o messiah_n be_v not_o preach_v to_o they_o by_o those_o sign_n likewise_o as_o untrue_o he_o say_v that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o gentile_n end_v in_o the_o only_a honour_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o not_o of_o god_n when_o they_o do_v never_o honour_v any_o creature_n but_o their_o final_a end_n be_v thereby_o to_o honour_n god_n and_o not_o a_o creature_n again_o what_o beastly_a doctrine_n be_v this_o that_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o utter_o abolish_v but_o change_v into_o the_o sacrament_n direct_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o also_o into_o sign_n make_v with_o faithful_a man_n hand_n as_o altar_n vestment_n chalice_n light_n and_o image_n whereby_o he_o make_v christian_a liberty_n but_o a_o change_n from_o one_o bondage_n into_o a_o other_o and_o yet_o worse_o than_o that_o of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o yoke_n of_o god_n we_o must_v be_v under_o the_o yoke_n of_o man_n institution_n and_o tradition_n but_o he_o proceed_v and_o will_v prove_v that_o image_n may_v be_v profitable_o and_o free_o worship_v and_o that_o in_o practice_v it_o be_v so_o do_v within_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o chryostome_n paulinus_n and_o gregory_n chryostome_n be_v allege_v in_o his_o liturgy_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o priest_n turn_v to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n between_o the_o two_o door_n bow_v his_o head_n say_v a_o prayer_n but_o because_o this_o liturgy_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a &_o counterfeit_v by_o master_n jewel_n for_o that_o therein_o be_v contain_v a_o prayer_n for_o pope_n nicholas_n which_o live_v not_o 500_o year_n after_o chryostome_n and_o for_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n which_o live_v near_o 700._o year_n after_o chryostome_n master_n saunder_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o to_o be_v write_v by_o chryostome_n which_o be_v write_v seven_o hundred_o year_n after_o his_o death_n his_o first_o reason_n be_v that_o it_o bear_v his_o name_n which_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n to_o prove_v all_o forgery_n to_o be_v true_a write_n second_o other_o grecian_n which_o have_v write_v since_o that_o time_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o it_o as_o proclus_n cabaselas_n methenencis_n and_o m._n ephesius_n but_o of_o these_o some_o only_o make_v mention_v that_o chryostome_n do_v write_v a_o liturgy_n they_o do_v not_o justify_v that_o this_o which_o be_v now_o see_v be_v that_o the_o other_o be_v of_o late_a day_n be_v not_o to_o be_v credit_v three_o he_o say_v that_o greek_a church_n do_v allow_v it_o for_o chrisostomes_n as_o that_o latin_a do_v those_o psalm_n quicunque_fw-la vult_fw-la to_o be_v write_v by_o athanasius_n and_o te_fw-la deum_fw-la by_o ambrose_n and_o augustine_n and_o yet_o the_o best_a learned_a in_o these_o day_n can_v be_v persuade_v of_o those_o author_n although_o the_o psalm_n be_v good_a and_o godly_a four_o he_o will_v fain_o disprove_v m._n jewel_n reason_n touch_v those_o prayer_n for_o pope_n nicolas_n and_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n say_v that_o in_o all_o public_a service_n &_o form_n of_o prayer_n there_o be_v certain_a common_a place_n which_o must_v be_v leave_v void_a for_o name_n according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n but_o these_o place_n be_v not_o leave_v void_a but_o fill_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o prelate_n of_o that_o time_n in_o which_o it_o be_v first_o write_v as_o the_o public_a service_n in_o king_n henry_n day_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n yea_o prayer_n make_v in_o queen_n mary_n time_n and_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n do_v prove_v and_o show_v in_o what_o time_n they_o be_v first_o make_v but_o in_o some_o copy_n say_v he_o the_o place_n be_v leave_v void_a he_o must_v prove_v those_o copy_n to_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o time_n of_o alexius_n or_o else_o they_o help_v not_o his_o cause_n but_o see_v there_o be_v no_o copy_n that_o have_v any_o other_o name_n but_o these_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o liturgy_n be_v first_o compose_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o emperor_n alexius_n and_o pope_n nicholas_n and_o where_o as_o master_n saunder_n use_v many_o word_n and_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o this_o pope_n nicholas_n be_v not_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o master_n jewel_n say_v but_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o alexius_n i_o yield_v unto_o he_o for_o thereby_o it_o be_v more_o certain_a that_o this_o liturgy_n be_v make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o alexius_n then_o if_o it_o have_v be_v nicholas_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v near_o 200._o year_n before_o alexius_n last_o of_o all_o where_o as_o claudius_n de_fw-fr sanctis_fw-la that_o brawl_a sorbonist_n will_v prove_v by_o confer_v it_o with_o diverse_a place_n take_v out_o of_o chrisostomes_n own_o work_n the_o say_a liturgy_n to_o be_v his_o he_o have_v labour_v in_o vain_a for_o as_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o diverse_a thing_n in_o this_o liturgy_n be_v take_v out_o of_o that_o which_o perhaps_o chryostome_n do_v write_v yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o whole_a form_n thereof_o be_v he_o but_o that_o the_o same_o be_v corrupt_v and_o alter_v with_o addition_n and_o detraction_n in_o the_o day_n of_o alexius_n and_o especial_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o image_n which_o i_o prove_v by_o two_o reason_n first_o among_o so_o many_o counterfeit_a and_o falsify_v authority_n as_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o old_a writer_n in_o the_o idolatours_n counsel_n of_o nice_a the_o second_o for_o the_o use_n and_o worship_n of_o image_n this_o liturgy_n be_v never_o allege_v though_o other_o testimony_n of_o chryostome_n be_v cite_v which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v omit_v see_v nothing_o be_v so_o notorious_a as_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o liturgy_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o chryostome_n in_o that_o time_n have_v in_o it_o no_o mention_n of_o image_n or_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o my_o second_o reason_n be_v that_o chryostome_n himself_o in_o his_o own_o undoubted_a write_n count_v the_o art_n of_o paint_v to_o be_v altogether_o superfluous_a and_o such_o as_o may_v well_o be_v spare_v out_o of_o the_o world_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v appoint_v in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n the_o use_n of_o a_o image_n as_o necessary_a or_o profitable_a for_o thus_o he_o write_v in_o math_n hom._n 50._o neque_fw-la pingendi_fw-la ariem_fw-la aut_fw-la nunimulariam_fw-la art_n ego_fw-la nominarim_n quip_n cum_fw-la nihil_fw-la conserant_fw-la necessariarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la quibus_fw-la vita_fw-la nostra_fw-la continetur_fw-la neither_o will_v i_o call_v the_o art_n of_o paint_v or_o of_o exchange_v money_n by_o the_o name_n of_o art_n see_v that_o they_o yield_v nothing_o off_o those_o necessary_a thing_n in_o which_o our_o life_n be_v contain_v now_o as_o concern_v the_o image_n of_o s._n martin_n paint_v in_o the_o baptistery_n by_o severus_n and_o allow_v by_o paulinus_n bishop_n of_o nola_n i_o have_v answer_v before_o that_o his_o error_n prove_v not_o god_n institution_n but_o whereas_o he_o cite_v his_o verse_n to_o prove_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n he_o do_v he_o wrong_n martinum_fw-la veneranda_fw-la viri_fw-la testatur_fw-la imago_fw-la the_o reverend_a image_n of_o the_o man_n do_v show_v forth_o martin_n for_o pocre_n have_v ever_o have_v licence_n of_o all_o figure_n in_o their_o verse_n wherefore_o he_o do_v none_o otherwise_o call_v the_o image_n reverend_a or_o to_o be_v reverence_v than_o virgil_n call_v the_o image_n of_o his_o father_n anchises_n trouble_v admonet_fw-la in_o somnis_fw-la &_o turbida_fw-la terret_fw-la imago_fw-la mean_v not_o that_o the_o image_n but_o that_o anchises_n be_v trouble_v so_o do_v paulinus_n mean_v that_o s._n martin_n and_o not_o his_o image_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v final_o where_o as_o master_n jewel_n say_v that_o gregory_n speak_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n master_n saunder_n object_v this_o say_n lib._n 7._o ep._n 53._o non_fw-la quasi_fw-la ante_fw-la divinitatem_fw-la ante_fw-la illam_fw-la imaginem_fw-la prosternimur_fw-la which_o he_o english_v thus_o we_o lie_v prostrate_a before_o the_o image_n not_o as_o before_o god_n and_o then_o he_o triumph_v like_o a_o crow_n in_o a_o gutter_n say_v be_v not_o lie_v flat_o down_o before_o a_o image_n one_o word_n speak_v of_o adoration_n of_o image_n yea_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n in_o saint_n gregory_n time_n to_o lie_v prostrate_a
pope_n leo_n say_v at_o his_o death_n that_o this_o one_o thing_n he_o shall_v gain_v by_o die_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v resolve_v concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n wherein_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n before_o can_v not_o satisfy_v he_o last_o of_o all_o what_o a_o impudent_a liar_n master_n rastell_n be_v you_o may_v plain_o perceive_v when_o he_o charge_v the_o bishop_n with_o this_o confession_n that_o these_o nine_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o none_o do_v ever_o take_v this_o way_n which_o he_o do_v follow_v for_o although_o the_o bishop_n make_v his_o challenge_n of_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n ▪_o yet_o do_v he_o never_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o nine_o hundred_o year_n follow_v none_o do_v ever_o retain_v or_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o teach_v when_o god_n be_v praise_v there_o be_v a_o number_n even_o in_o the_o most_o blind_a time_n that_o see_v the_o light_n thereof_o although_o they_o be_v few_o and_o persecute_v by_o antichrist_n rastel_n sectio_fw-la 4._o from_o the_o second_o face_n of_o the_o 23._o leaf_n to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o 38._o leaf_n in_o which_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o english_a communion_n and_o service_n do_v not_o follow_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o take_v into_o their_o hand●_n and_o blessing_n the_o cup_n and_o the_o chalice_n nor_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o pray_v towards_o the_o east_n mingle_v water_n with_o the_o wine_n sign_n of_o the_o cross_n altar_n incense_n tapern_n pray_v to_o saint_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a fulke_n the_o ●_o in_o his_o sermon_n affirm_v as_o r._n say_v 1._o the_o holy_a communion_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o the_o use_n &_o form_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 2._o to_o the_o same_o order_n that_o be_v deliver_v &_o appoint_v by_o christ_n 3._o and_o after_o practise_v by_o the_o apostle_n 4._o and_o continue_v by_o the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o father_n by_o the_o space_n of_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n throughout_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n 5._o without_o exception_n or_o any_o sufficient_a example_n to_o be_v show_v to_o the_o contrary_n all_o these_o master_n rast._n say_v be_v lie_n which_o be_v his_o short_a answer_n and_o i_o can_v answer_v as_o short_o that_o then_o they_o be_v lie_v of_o master_n rastell_v forge_v for_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v no_o such_o thing_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a form_n of_o our_o communion_n but_o of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o but_o let_v we_o see_v his_o answer_n at_o large_a he_o will_v know_v how_o this_o communion_n of_o we_o do_v agree_v with_o that_o which_o christ_n deliver_v and_o they_o rehearse_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n begin_v at_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o pascall_n lamb_n and_o the_o wash_n of_o his_o disciple_n foot_n as_o though_o either_o of_o these_o pertain_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o forsooth_o we_o must_v tell_v he_o how_o many_o thing_n more_o &_o how_o many_o thing_n less_o our_o order_n in_o the_o communion_n book_n have_v and_o first_o what_o scripture_n we_o have_v for_o the_o linen_n clothe_v for_o the_o priest_n stand_v on_o the_o north_n side_n of_o the_o table_n for_o our_o prayer_n confession_n collect_n &_o other_o ceremony_n and_o see_v we_o have_v no_o scripture_n for_o these_o the_o communion_n be_v not_o restore_v to_o the_o order_n appoint_v by_o christ._n i_o answer_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o those_o matter_n pertain_v to_o order_n and_o decency_n we_o have_v scripture_n sufficient_a to_o authorise_v they_o although_o as_o i_o say_v before_o the_o bishop_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o ceremonial_a form_n of_o ministration_n but_o of_o the_o substance_n and_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o communion_n concern_v which_o we_o have_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o christ_n use_v and_o deliver_v yet_o say_v master_n rast._n we_o have_v many_o point_n less_o than_o be_v do_v by_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n first_o he_o will_v not_o press_v we_o with_o that_o question_n why_o we_o do_v not_o communicate_v after_o supper_n which_o peradventure_o yet_o some_o do_v with_o the_o sick_a as_o a_o thing_n not_o unlawful_a nor_o tie_v to_o any_o time_n but_o by_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o order_n and_o decency_n but_o he_o demand_v why_o we_o take_v not_o the_o bread_n into_o our_o hand_n before_o we_o consecrate_v it_o as_o christ_n do_v a_o profound_a question_n as_o though_o we_o do_v not_o both_o take_v it_o break_v it_o receive_v it_o and_o deliver_v it_o with_o our_o hand_n as_o christ_n do_v or_o as_o though_o christ_n appoint_v at_o what_o moment_n we_o shall_v touch_v it_o or_o that_o m._n rastel_n be_v able_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n speak_v nothing_o of_o his_o institution_n before_o he_o touch_v the_o bread_n or_o as_o though_o we_o do_v not_o use_v ordinary_o before_o we_o make_v the_o exhortation_n unto_o the_o communion_n to_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o break_v it_o and_o with_o the_o cup_n to_o set_v it_o before_o we_o &_o not_o to_o let_v it_o stand_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o table_n as_o he_o belly_n we_o as_o though_o we_o wer●_n ashamed_a to_o follow_v christ._n the_o second_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v less_o than_o christ_n do_v as_o he_o say_v be_v blessing_n of_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v utter_o false_a for_o we_o bless_v it_o as_o christ_n do_v not_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n as_o you_o will_v have_v we_o but_o with_o thanksgivinge_v and_o prayer_n as_o the_o evangelist_n do_v testify_v that_o christ_n do_v and_o as_o the_o primitive_a and_o apostolic_a church_n do_v practice_v and_o therefore_o justinus_n marty●_n speak_v of_o the_o sanctify_a or_o bless_a nourishment_n of_o the_o sacrament_n call_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o nourishment_n for_o which_o thanks_n be_v give_v by_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n receive_v of_o he_o and_o touch_v the_o reverend_a gesture_n use_v by_o christ_n at_o his_o supper_n as_o we_o doubt_v nothing_o but_o that_o he_o use_v they_o always_o so_o can_v m._n rastell_n with_o all_o his_o prate_n prove_v none_o other_o than_o the_o evangelist_n have_v set_v down_o and_o therefore_o for_o his_o look_v on_o the_o bread_n separate_v it_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bread_n on_o the_o table_n blessing_n it_o by_o some_o special_a sign_n as_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n etc_n etc_n when_o he_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o reform_v our_o communion_n accord_v to_o those_o suppose_a gesture_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n notwithstanding_o his_o ruffian_n like_o rail_v our_o order_n of_o celebration_n have_v all_o thing_n institute_v and_o deliver_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o reverend_a ministration_n of_o this_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n the_o second_o lie_n he_o charge_v master_n jewel_n with_o all_o be_v that_o he_o say_v we_o have_v the_o same_o order_n that_o be_v practi●ed_v by_o the_o apostle_n where_o as_o we_o read_v of_o none_o order_v practise_v by_o they_o for_o act_n the_o 2._o we_o read_v say_v he_o that_o they_o do_v break_v bread_n in_o house_n and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o that_o be_v the_o communion_n and_o act_n 13._o say_v he_o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v fast_v and_o sacrifice_v they_o send_v forth_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n but_o where_o find_v you_o that_o translation_n master_n rastell_n that_o they_o sacrifice_v will_v you_o now_o forsake_v your_o own_o latin_a translation_n ministrantibus_fw-la illis_fw-la domino_fw-la when_o they_o minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o so_o wilful_o run_v into_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o tridentine_a council_n or_o will_v you_o appeal_v to_o the_o greek_a text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n signify_v any_o public_a ministry_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o learned_a graetians_n and_o erasmus_n himself_o who_o you_o follow_v in_o this_o translation_n though_o you_o count_v he_o a_o heretic_n and_o forsake_v your_o catholic_a translation_n confirm_v by_o general_a council_n well_o than_o i_o see_v that_o papist_n jangle_n of_o general_a counsel_n and_o catholic_a interpretation_n unto_o other_o but_o they_o themselves_o will_v be_v hold_v of_o none_o any_o long_a than_o they_o list_v but_o to_o the_o matter_n he_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n 1_n cor._n 11._o testify_v of_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o not_o of_o the_o order_n refer_n that_o to_o his_o own_o come_n as_o though_o he_o do_v not_o manifest_o reform_v a_o disorder_n or_o as_o though_o other_o thing_n which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v set_v in_o order_n at_o his_o come_n can_v be_v take_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o he_o write_v of_o in_o his_o epistle_n but_o what_o of_o all_o
to_o make_v no_o diference_n between_o matter_n of_o substance_n and_o matter_n of_o circumstance_n as_o he_o by_o his_o popish_a sophistry_n do_v confound_v rastle_v sectio_fw-la 24._o from_o the_o second_o face_n of_o the_o 72._o leaf_n to_o the_o second_o face_n of_o the_o 74._o leaf_n wherein_o he_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n where_o the_o bishop_n say_v that_o the_o old_a doctor_n never_o make_v mention_n of_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fulk_n master_n rastell_n say_v the_o argument_n be_v both_o naught_o and_o lie_v nought_o because_o it_o may_v be_v they_o use_v it_o although_o they_o never_o speak_v of_o it_o &_o lie_v because_o he_o say_v they_o do_v speak_v of_o it_o but_o to_o answer_v the_o naughtiness_n of_o the_o argument_n i_o say_v master_n rastell_n be_v both_o a_o naughty_a and_o lie_a gatherer_n of_o the_o bishop_n argument_n dismember_n that_o which_o he_o join_v together_o thus_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n never_o make_v mention_n of_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v use_v and_o concern_v the_o lie_v suppose_v i_o answer_v that_o no_o ancient_a doctor_n speak_v one_o word_n of_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_o but_o either_o of_o adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n or_o of_o worship_v and_o adore_v that_o be_v reverent_o handle_v and_o honour_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o no_o more_o of_o this_o sacrament_n then_o of_o the_o other_o namely_o baptism_n for_o answer_v to_o the_o place_n he_o cite_v out_o of_o chrysostom_n ambrose_n augustine_n i_o will_v refer_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o answer_n unto_o the_o 45.46_o &_o 47._o chapter_n of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o heskins_n parliament_n where_o this_o question_n be_v handle_v more_o at_o large_a save_v that_o which_o he_o cite_v out_o of_o hom._n 83._o out_o of_o chrysost._n that_o we_o be_v feed_v with_o that_o thing_n which_o the_o angel_n do_v honour_n which_o we_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n yet_o pertain_v it_o nothing_o to_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o much_o less_o that_o he_o cite_v ex_fw-la orat._n in_o philon._n that_o as_o we_o entertain_v god_n here_o so_o he_o will_v receive_v we_o there_o with_o much_o glory_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o honour_v god_n and_o not_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n sectio_fw-la 25._o in_o the_o 74._o leaf_n rastel_n the_o bishop_n answer_v a_o place_n of_o augustine_n say_v fulk_n we_o must_v worship_v christ_n where_o we_o eat_v he_o but_o we_o eat_v he_o in_o heaven_n by_o faith_n therefore_o we_o must_v worship_v he_o there_o m._n rastel_n say_v we_o eat_v he_o on_o earth_n also_o but_o proof_n he_o bring_v none_o great_a than_o his_o own_o say_n either_o of_o reason_n or_o authority_n sectio_fw-la 26._o from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 74._o leaf_n to_o the_o first_o face_n of_o the_o 79._o leaf_n rastel_n the_o bishop_n prove_v we_o must_v seek_v christ_n in_o heaven_n fulk_n by_o these_o reason_n we_o must_v lift_v up_o our_o heart_n we_o must_v seek_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o in_o heaven_n where_o christ_n be_v and_o not_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v upon_o earth_n where_o christ_n be_v not_o c●ll_n 3._o and_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n from_o whence_o we_o look_v for_o our_o saviour_n etc_n etc_n phil._n 3._o m._n rastel_n say_v the_o conclusion_n be_v infer_v mad_o and_o miserable_o because_o these_o text_n do_v no_o more_o disprove_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v on_o earth_n real_o than_o they_o prove_v our_o body_n to_o be_v in_o heaven_n real_o as_o in_o this_o short_a example_n our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o paul_n be_v on_o earth_n in_o body_n when_o he_o say_v this_o oh_o wise_a and_o happy_a concluder_n but_o blind_a and_o blockish_a interpreter_n which_o reason_v as_o though_o the_o word_n conversation_n in_o saint_n paul_n say_n do_v signify_v presence_n or_o be_v whereas_o it_o signify_v franche_n or_o liberty_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o franche_n freedom_n or_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n where_o be_v now_o your_o mad_a and_o miserable_a conclusion_n the_o bishop_n argument_n therefore_o on_o these_o place_n stand_v firm_a and_o unmoveable_a that_o christ_n be_v not_o on_o earth_n in_o body_n but_o in_o heaven_n where_o we_o must_v seek_v he_o not_o climb_v with_o ladder_n as_o it_o please_v master_n rastel_n to_o scoff_n in_o so_o grave_a matter_n but_o ascend_v by_o faith_n and_o affection_n set_v on_o heavenly_a and_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o for_o his_o exposition_n of_o sursian_a corda_fw-la how_o wholesome_a it_o be_v you_o may_v gather_v by_o this_o one_o note_n that_o in_o the_o very_a beginning_n ▪_o he_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o lie_v on_o the_o altar_n and_o carry_v in_o man_n hand_n but_o also_o break_v and_o divide_v the_o place_n he_o cite_v out_o of_o saint_n augustine_n for_o adoration_n be_v answer_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o master_n heskin_n before_o mention_v rastel_n sectio_fw-la 27._o the_o bishop_n say_v that_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o new_a devise_n of_o pope_n honorius_n fulke_n of_o three_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o after_o he_o vibanus_n the_o four_o make_v a_o holiday_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la etc_n etc_n master_n rastel_n be_v angry_a that_o three_o hundred_o year_n shall_v be_v count_v a_o little_a while_n ago_o when_o it_o be_v not_o three_o score_n year_n since_o luther_n spring_v up_o but_o if_o luther_n have_v teach_v any_o doctrine_n that_o be_v not_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n a_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o we_o be_v content_v it_o be_v account_v new_a but_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v 1500._o year_n ago_o must_v needs_o be_v old_a though_o luther_n be_v new_a and_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o age_n honorius_n and_o vrbanus_n be_v but_o young_a child_n but_o remit_v the_o antiquity_n master_n rastell_n will_v stand_v for_o the_o verity_n because_o the_o pope_n lack_v no_o counsel_n neither_o by_o your_o doctrine_n need_v they_o any_o 2._o the_o university_n be_v not_o without_o great_a scholar_n such_o as_o those_o blind_a and_o heretical_a time_n afford_v 3._o religious_a house_n and_o order_n be_v not_o destroy_v yea_o they_o swarm_v with_o locust_n to_o maintain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o absaddon_n 4._o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o true_a catholic_n be_v invincible_a yea_o but_o there_o be_v few_o true_a catholic_n in_o those_o day_n 5._o the_o wicked_a spirit_n in_o heretic_n will_v have_v be_v venturous_a yea_o the_o pope_n the_o archheretique_n of_o the_o world_n be_v venturous_a enough_o when_o he_o set_v up_o such_o idolatry_n 6._o a_o good_a man_n with_o the_o danger_n of_o his_o life_n will_v have_v speak_v the_o truth_n so_o do_v many_o good_a man_n which_o cost_v they_o their_o life_n 7._o a_o heretic_n for_o fame_n will_v not_o have_v pass_v upon_o death_n what_o need_v a_o heretic_n fear_v death_n when_o heresy_n be_v so_o general_o receive_v that_o the_o true_a catholic_n be_v condemn_v and_o burn_v for_o heretic_n by_o the_o name_n of_o albigenses_n waldenses_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n and_o such_o like_a which_o from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v persecute_v imprison_a and_o burn_v for_o refuse_v and_o disallow_v such_o idolatry_n and_o false_a worship_v these_o be_v the_o worshipful_a reason_n he_o have_v to_o prove_v the_o verity_n of_o this_o bread_n worship_n which_o after_o he_o have_v dilate_v more_o at_o large_a he_o come_v at_o length_n to_o admiration_n of_o the_o service_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la day_n make_v by_o thomas_n aquinas_n which_o he_o thinkeh_a to_o be_v so_o excellent_a that_o the_o very_a sound_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o anthem_n respondes_fw-la and_o versicles_n declare_v whence_o they_o proceed_v and_o i_o be_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n for_o the_o compare_v of_o such_o thing_n to_o the_o sacrament_n as_o pertain_v nothing_o unto_o it_o declare_v that_o such_o comparison_n come_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n &_o not_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v 3._o reg_n 19_o that_o helias_n see_v a_o cake_n of_o bread_n at_o his_o head_n etc_n etc_n and_o job_n complain_v of_o the_o cruelty_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o will_v have_v eat_v his_o flesh_n job._n 31._o and_o as_o for_o the_o holiday_n though_o it_o be_v institute_v but_o of_o late_a year_n yet_o he_o take_v it_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o adoration_n necessary_a which_o can_v not_o be_v see_v in_o the_o church_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n before_o or_o else_o that_o holiday_n shall_v have_v be_v set_v up_o long_o before_o rastel_n sectio_fw-la 28._o fulk_n the_o
whereas_o their_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o such_o strong_a wine_n as_o grow_v in_o those_o country_n will_v be_v preserve_v as_o long_o from_o savour_v as_o the_o bread_n from_o mould_v like_a be_v the_o example_n of_o serapion_n be_v at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n to_o who_o the_o priest_n be_v sick_a also_o send_v by_o a_o boy_n the_o sacrament_n upon_o which_o example_n he_o urge_v reservation_n which_o though_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a yet_o be_v it_o not_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n second_o the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n which_o be_v false_a for_o he_o send_v both_o and_o will_v he_o to_o dip_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o wine_n which_o he_o send_v and_o not_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o as_o m._n rastell_n say_v which_o be_v a_o absurdity_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v dip_v in_o profane_a liquor_n or_o send_v by_o a_o boy_n either_o if_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v so_o persuade_v of_o it_o as_o rastel_n will_v bear_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o all_o old_a father_n be_v that_o he_o receive_v alone_o prove_v no_o private_a mass_n nor_o allow_v sole_a receive_n as_o ordinary_a which_o be_v do_v in_o a_o case_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n in_o one_o which_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o can_v not_o depart_v this_o life_n before_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n the_o last_o example_n be_v the_o superstitious_a fact_n of_o satyrus_n the_o brother_n of_o ambrose_n which_o be_v not_o baptize_v obtain_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v in_o a_o ship_n with_o he_o in_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n which_o because_o he_o may_v not_o receive_v he_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v wrap_v in_o orario_n a_o linen_n garment_n which_o master_n rastell_n call_v a_o stole_n &_o wrap_v that_o linen_n garment_n about_o his_o neck_n and_o without_o other_o help_n escape_v by_o swim_v here_o m._n rastel_n think_v he_o have_v great_a advantage_n first_o that_o the_o christian_n have_v the_o sacrament_n out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o though_o the_o ship_n may_v not_o be_v their_o church_n for_o that_o time_n to_o minister_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o great_a danger_n second_o that_o it_o be_v in_o one_o kind_n except_o we_o can_v devise_v how_o to_o wrap_v wine_n in_o a_o stole_n no_o m._n rastel_n this_o prove_v not_o that_o the_o christian_n receive_v in_o one_o kind_n though_o they_o have_v wrap_v one_o kind_n in_o the_o steal_v as_o you_o call_v it_o for_o satyrus_n as_o yet_o no_o christian._n but_o why_o may_v they_o not_o either_o soak_v the_o bread_n in_o wine_n as_o some_o do_v in_o those_o day_n or_o else_o dip_v a_o corner_n of_o that_o linen_n cloth_n as_o some_o also_o use_v to_o do_v and_o wrap_v it_o up_o in_o that_o great_a linen_n garment_n and_o the_o word_n of_o ambrose_n fusum_fw-la in_o viscera_fw-la pour_v into_o his_o bowel_n will_v not_o agree_v to_o dry_a bread_n last_o of_o all_o whereas_o you_o say_v it_o be_v no_o fantastical_a figurative_a memory_n which_o save_v he_o from_o danger_n i_o agree_v with_o you_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o sacrament_n that_o he_o carry_v whatsoever_o you_o will_v call_v it_o but_o his_o faith_n as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v that_o preserve_v he_o and_o how_o soever_o it_o be_v the_o example_n of_o a_o unbaptised_a man_n weak_a and_o superstitious_a do_v do_v you_o but_o small_a honesty_n to_o confirm_v your_o common_a private_a mass_n sole_a receive_n opinion_n of_o carnal_a presence_n or_o what_o so_o ever_o beside_o you_o can_v gather_v out_o of_o it_o sectio_fw-la 39_o from_o the_o 132._o leaf_n to_o the_o second_o face_n of_o the_o 135._o leaf_n of_o service_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n rastel_n to_o the_o bishop_n challenge_n that_o common_a prayer_n be_v not_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n he_o have_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n fulk_n but_o only_o affirm_v that_o augustine_n the_o monk_n bring_v latin_a service_n into_o england_n which_o the_o people_n understand_v not_o which_o both_o be_v somewhat_o without_o the_o compass_n and_o also_o only_o say_v of_o he_o without_o proof_n or_o likelihood_n he_o say_v he_o make_v not_o a_o new_a english_a service_n or_o kentish_a rather_o but_o use_v the_o roman_a fashion_n and_o language_n be_v it_o grant_v that_o he_o bring_v in_o the_o latin_a service_n yet_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o the_o people_n do_v not_o at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o most_o part_n understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n see_v he_o can_v preach_v to_o they_o only_o in_o latin_a be_v a_o roman_a and_o they_o also_o t●at_a come_v with_o he_o understand_v no_o part_n of_o the_o english_a tongue_n as_o our_o story_n do_v testify_v and_o that_o he_o plant_v not_o the_o roman_a service_n it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o answer_n of_o gregory_n to_o his_o third_o demand_n of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o french_a church_n in_o which_o answer_n he_o bind_v he_o not_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o will_v he_o to_o choose_v out_o of_o all_o church_n what_o he_o think_v most_o convenient_a and_o profitable_a for_o the_o english_a church_n and_o see_v the_o scripture_n and_o diverse_a homelye_n and_o prayer_n remain_v still_o in_o the_o saxon_a or_o old_a english_a tongue_n i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o he_o may_v have_v make_v a_o new_a english_a service_n although_o by_o reason_n of_o so_o many_o mutation_n &_o trouble_n as_o happen_v in_o this_o land_n by_o mean_n of_o civil_a and_o extern_a war_n &_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n antichrist_n daily_o more_o and_o more_o encroach_a the_o same_o may_v grow_v out_o of_o use_n and_o latin_n only_o be_v retain_v which_o perhaps_o at_o the_o first_o be_v but_o usual_a unto_o monastery_n or_o clerk_n but_o how_o soever_o it_o be_v this_o be_v a_o invincible_a argument_n that_o augustine_n plant_v not_o the_o roman_a service_n in_o this_o land_n because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o diversity_n of_o custom_n as_o there_o be_v diverse_a bishop_n see_v and_o all_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o have_v none_o authority_n he_o have_v reason_n perhaps_o to_o defend_v latin_a service_n first_o latin_a service_n be_v as_o meet_v for_o englishman_n as_z english_a service_n be_v for_o welshman_n wherewith_o he_o say_v we_o find_v no_o fault_n wherein_o he_o lie_v for_o the_o welshman_n that_o understand_v not_o english_a have_v their_o common_a prayer_n in_o their_o welsh_a tongue_n the_o second_o reason_n he_o use_v that_o saint_n paul_n do_v write_v in_o greek_a to_o the_o roman_n ergo_fw-la the_o service_n must_v be_v in_o latin_a to_o englishmen_n he_o say_v himself_o there_o be_v many_o difference_n between_o a_o epistle_n &_o a_o common_a form_n of_o prayer_n which_o be_v very_o true_a but_o will_v he_o prove_v thereby_o that_o the_o roman_n have_v their_o common_a prayer_n in_o greek_a the_o cause_n why_o the_o apostle_n do_v write_v in_o greek_a be_v because_o he_o write_v not_o only_o to_o the_o roman_n but_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n unto_o which_o the_o greek_a tongue_n be_v more_o familiar_a than_o the_o latin_a and_o be_v of_o many_o understand_v in_o rome_n and_o also_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ●ad_v consecrate_v the_o greeks_n tongue_n be_v the_o principal_a tongue_n of_o the_o gentile_n unto_o the_o write_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n avoid_v to_o use_v the_o latin_a tongue_n even_o to_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o name_n of_o antichrist_n latino_n contain_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n name_v 666._o as_o irenaeus_n do_v testify_v his_o third_o reason_n be_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v say_v in_o public_a prayer_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v say_v in_o secret_a therefore_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n be_v best_a to_o utter_v they_o his_o antecedent_n he_o prove_v not_o out_o of_o scripture_n or_o any_o ancient_a authentical_a writer_n but_o out_o of_o the_o liturgy_n false_o ascribe_v to_o saint_n basil_n and_o saint_n chrysostom_n and_o yet_o the_o argument_n have_v no_o consequence_n in_o the_o world_n for_o then_o those_o prayer_n in_o the_o latin_a service_n to_o the_o roman_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n to_o every_o nation_n final_o where_o he_o say_v there_o need_v no_o diversity_n of_o service_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o language_n he_o speak_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n cap._n 9_o which_o command_v the_o bishop_n to_o provide_v that_o the_o sacrament_n and_o other_o divine_a service_n shall_v be_v minister_v to_o all_o people_n in_o their_o diocese_n according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o their_o language_n and_o custom_n by_o which_o it_o be_v
easy_a of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v understand_v and_o need_v none_o interpreter_n for_o that_o we_o be_v all_o teach_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o spirit_n etc_n etc_n of_o which_o mind_n he_o imagine_v his_o adversary_n to_o be_v in_o that_o he_o will_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o man_n how_o false_a &_o slanderous_a this_o his_o report_n be_v of_o luther_n may_v sufficient_o appear_v by_o that_o one_o word_n theodidacti_n teach_v of_o god_n by_o which_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o luther_n affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o all_o man_n in_o general_a but_o only_o of_o all_o they_o that_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o spirit_n by_o which_o they_o be_v indite_v but_o now_o our_o burgess_n will_v make_v plain_a by_o discussion_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a dark_a and_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n not_o of_o all_o man_n indifferent_o to_o be_v read_v and_o that_o by_o seven_o argument_n although_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v read_v because_o they_o be_v hard_a but_o the_o contrary_a yet_o let_v we_o weigh_v these_o seven_o argument_n the_o first_o there_o be_v many_o controversy_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n therefore_o there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o the_o scripture_n if_o controversy_n raise_v by_o froward_a maintainer_n of_o falsehood_n be_v a_o proof_n of_o difficulty_n there_o shall_v nothing_o be_v plain_a not_o only_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n neither_o in_o any_o other_o write_n or_o say_n of_o man_n no_o not_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v subject_a to_o our_o sense_n but_o we_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o a_o academical_a doubtfulness_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o what_o say_v you_o m._n heskins_n be_v not_o the_o scripture_n plain_a for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o you_o maintain_v be_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la now_o a_o matter_n of_o difficulty_n let_v all_o papist_n that_o have_v wit_n beware_v of_o your_o proceed_a you_o have_v even_o now_o by_o your_o first_o argument_n cut_v asunder_o the_o sin_n &_o strength_n of_o all_o your_o cause_n the_o second_o the_o very_a disciple_n of_o christ_n beside_o the_o jew_n understand_v not_o christ_n own_a word_n before_o they_o be_v write_v joh._n 6._o much_o less_o we_o the_o same_o write_v to_o pass_v over_o the_o ungodly_a difference_n you_o make_v between_o christ_n word_n proceed_v out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o the_o same_o write_v by_o inspiration_n of_o his_o own_o holy_a spirit_n call_v you_o they_o the_o very_a disciple_n of_o christ_n which_o offend_v with_o that_o speech_n depart_v from_o he_o or_o they_o that_o abide_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o tarry_v still_o with_o he_o such_o disciple_n as_o the_o former_a be_v be_v you_o and_o your_o sect_n which_o when_o the_o scripture_n serve_v not_o your_o purpose_n accuse_v it_o of_o difficulty_n and_o uncertainty_n as_o the_o old_a heretic_n the_o valentinian_n do_v as_o witness_v irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 2._o but_o chrysostom_n i_o suppose_v help_v you_o much_o jo●●_n where_o he_o say_v quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la est_fw-la durus_fw-la difficilis_fw-la intellectu_fw-la &_o quem_fw-la capere_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n eorum_fw-la imbecillitas_fw-la plenus_fw-la formidinis_fw-la what_o then_o be_v this_o word_n hard_a difficult_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o such_o as_o their_o weakness_n can_v not_o receive_v full_a of_o fearfulness_n here_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostom_n but_o to_o what_o purpose_n when_o no_o doctor_n more_o often_o or_o more_o earnest_o exhort_v all_o lay_v man_n that_o be_v christian_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n of_o god_n affirm_v they_o also_o to_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o not_o only_o without_o danger_n but_o also_o very_o profitable_a even_o where_o they_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v i_o will_v rehearse_v one_o or_o two_o place_n of_o a_o great_a number_n in_o luc._n cap._n 16._o idque_fw-la horror_n &_o hortari_fw-la non_fw-la desinam_fw-la etc_n etc_n and_o this_o i_o exhort_v you_o and_o will_v not_o cease_v to_o exhort_v you_o that_o you_o will_v not_o only_o in_o this_o place_n mean_v in_o the_o church_n give_v heed_n to_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v say_v but_o also_o when_o you_o shall_v be_v at_o home_n you_o will_v every_o day_n give_v yourselves_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o there_o follow_v a_o reason_n neque_fw-la nunc_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la neither_o can_v it_o now_o be_v i_o say_v it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v obtain_v salvation_n except_o he_o be_v continual_o conversant_a in_o spiritual_a read_n and_o not_o long_o after_o etiamsi_fw-la non_fw-la intelligas_fw-la illic_fw-la recondita_fw-la etc_n etc_n yea_o although_o thou_o understand_v not_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v therein_o hide_v yet_o of_o the_o very_a read_n of_o they_o great_a holiness_n grow_v final_o in_o genesim_fw-la hom._n 9_o in_o divinis_fw-la autem_fw-la scripture_n etc_n etc_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o in_o those_o spiritual_a and_o precious_a story_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a to_o suspect_v any_o danger_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o great_a labour_n but_o unspeakable_a gain_n only_o let_v we_o bring_v with_o cheerfulness_n that_o which_o lie_v in_o us._n the_o three_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a for_o every_o man_n to_o understand_v it_o be_v no_o great_a benefit_n that_o christ_n do_v open_v his_o apostle_n wit_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n nor_o that_o he_o do_v interpret_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o disciple_n that_o go_v to_o emaus_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v with_o s._n peter_n that_o as_o he_o witness_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v hard_o so_o be_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n hard_o oh_o blunder_a burgess_n who_o do_v ever_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n or_o what_o ass_n of_o acarnania_n will_v brave_v out_o such_o a_o reason_n the_o apostle_n can_v not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n sufficient_o to_o teach_v all_o the_o world_n without_o a_o singular_a gift_n of_o interpretation_n therefore_o no_o christian_a man_n may_v learn_v by_o read_v the_o scripture_n how_o to_o know_v god_n to_o his_o eternal_a salvation_n without_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a gift_n but_o by_o your_o leave_n master_n speaker_n for_o the_o office_n you_o take_v upon_o you_o i_o know_v not_o how_o you_o come_v unto_o it_o you_o misreport_n s_o peter_n be_v a_o lord_n of_o the_o high_a house_n as_o you_o count_v he_o for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v hard_o but_o that_o among_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v of_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n some_o thing_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v wherefore_o neither_o his_o authority_n nor_o your_o reason_n will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o conclude_v your_o cause_n the_o four_o the_o chamberlain_n can_v not_o understand_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n without_o a_o interpreter_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o plain_a and_o easy_a of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v understand_v a_o proper_a conclusion_n there_o be_v some_o difficulty_n in_o some_o scripture_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o hard_a and_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v we_o neither_o affirm_v that_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v nor_o that_o they_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o all_o man_n but_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n be_v instruct_v to_o understand_v so_o much_o in_o they_o as_o be_v profitable_a for_o their_o salvation_n and_o that_o nothing_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o know_v be_v so_o obscure_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v as_o plain_o set_v down_o in_o a_o other_o neither_o do_v we_o reject_v interpreter_n because_o we_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o as_o chrysostom_n teach_v by_o read_v the_o scripture_n we_o be_v make_v more_o apt_a to_o understand_v the_o interpreter_n in_o euan._n joan._n hom._n 10._o the_o example_n of_o philip_n send_v unto_o the_o chamberlain_n do_v also_o declare_v how_o god_n will_v bless_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o he_o be_v seek_v in_o they_o the_o five_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o understand_v not_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n john_n 16._o after_o a_o while_n etc_n etc_n therefore_o if_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n be_v dark_a much_o more_o be_v the_o same_o now_o write_v in_o dead_a letter_n dark_a &_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v the_o apostle_n by_o special_a dispensation_n not_o yet_o so_o well_o lighten_v that_o they_o understand_v their_o master_n not_o
only_o at_o this_o time_n but_o at_o many_o other_o time_n also_o bewray_v their_o natural_a ignorance_n that_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o their_o illumination_n in_o due_a time_n afterward_o may_v appear_v more_o glorious_a but_o do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n be_v hard_a or_o their_o understanding_n dark_a a_o blind_a man_n can_v not_o see_v the_o sun_n be_v it_o therefore_o a_o good_a conclusion_n that_o the_o sun_n be_v dark_a and_o not_o easy_a to_o be_v see_v howbeit_o it_o be_v well_o to_o be_v mark_v that_o once_o again_o he_o put_v difference_n between_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n write_v in_o dead_a letter_n make_v opposition_n between_o the_o lively_a voice_n in_o the_o ear_n and_o the_o dead_a letter_n in_o the_o eye_n as_o though_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n consist_v either_o in_o the_o ear_n or_o in_o the_o eye_n when_o neither_o the_o eye_n have_v see_v nor_o the_o ear_n have_v hear_v neither_o have_v they_o ascend_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n such_o thing_n as_o god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o love_v he_o 1._o cor._n 2._o es._n 64._o but_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n which_o spirit_n search_v out_o all_o thing_n even_o the_o depth_n or_o great_a secret_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o here_o be_v bring_v in_o hieronyme_n ad_fw-la paulinum_n habet_fw-la nescio_fw-la quid_fw-la latentis_fw-la energiae_fw-la viva_fw-la vox_fw-la etc_n etc_n the_o lively_a voice_n have_v i_o know_v not_o what_o hide_v virtue_n and_o be_v utter_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o author_n into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o disciple_n sound_v more_o strong_o wherefore_o aeschyne_v when_o he_o be_v banish_v at_o rhodes_n and_o that_o oration_n of_o demosthenes_n be_v read_v which_o he_o make_v against_o he_o when_o all_o man_n do_v wonder_v at_o it_o and_o praise_v it_o sigh_v he_o say_v what_o if_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o beast_n himself_o sound_v out_o his_o own_o word_n this_o write_v hieronyme_n to_o persuade_v paulinꝰ_n not_o only_o to_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o his_o write_n but_o also_o to_o travel_v that_o he_o may_v so_o he_o &_o hear_v he_o who_o he_o have_v know_v before_o only_o by_o his_o writing_n &_o that_o by_o the_o example_n not_o only_o of_o heathen_a philosopher_n but_o also_o of_o holy_a man_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o next_o word_n follow_v immediate_o do_v plain_o testify_v haec_fw-la non_fw-la dico_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o i_o aliquid_fw-la tale_n etc_n etc_n i_o say_v not_o these_o thing_n for_o that_o there_o be_v in_o i_o any_o such_o matter_n which_o either_o thou_o may_v or_o be_v desirous_a to_o learn_v but_o because_o thy_o fervent_a heat_n and_o desire_v of_o learning_n aught_o to_o be_v commend_v even_o without_o we_o thy_o wit_n be_v pregnant_a and_o commendable_a without_o a_o teacher_n 3_n so_o far_o be_v it_o off_o that_o hieronyme_n mean_v to_o compare_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n speak_v with_o that_o which_o be_v write_v who_o force_n be_v as_o great_a by_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o this_o dog_n call_v the_o dead_a letter_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o voice_n when_o it_o be_v utter_v but_o how_o impudent_o the_o name_n of_o hieronyme_n be_v abuse_v against_o his_o plain_a judgement_n whereby_o he_o not_o only_o allow_v lay_v man_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o also_o confess_v that_o they_o receive_v great_a fruit_n thereby_o may_v appear_v by_o this_o one_o place_n among_o many_o write_v in_o esaiam_n libro_fw-la 4._o cap._n 11._o frequenter_a evenit_fw-la ut_fw-la homines_fw-la soeculi_fw-la it_o come_v to_o pass_v very_o often_o that_o lie_v man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o mystical_a sense_n be_v yet_o feed_v with_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n 33._o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n upon_o the_o same_o commentary_n he_o affirm_v that_o ignoratio_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la ignoratio_fw-la christi_fw-la est_fw-la ignorance_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o ignorance_n of_o christ_n shortness_n will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o point_v the_o place_n only_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o the_o adversary_n if_o any_o doubt_n or_o will_v see_v more_o let_v they_o read_v the_o place_n at_o the_o full_a the_o six_o all_o man_n have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o knowledge_n of_o prophecy_n nor_o of_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n therefore_o every_o man_n have_v not_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o be_v they_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v of_o every_o man._n first_o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o he_o make_v interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o tong_n all_o one_o second_o what_o force_n be_v in_o this_o reason_n all_o man_n have_v not_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o tong_n of_o heal_v of_o knowledge_n of_o prophecy_n of_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n etc_n etc_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o hard_a as_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o ordinary_a gift_n of_o prophecy_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o all_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n young_a &_o old_a man_n and_o woman_n upon_o who_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v pour_v 10.2_o act._n 2._o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o any_o more_o word_n in_o answer_n unto_o such_o a_o gross_a consequence_n the_o seven_o god_n have_v ordain_v first_o apostle_n ▪_o second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n etc_n etc_n now_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v easy_a for_o every_o man_n understanding_n then_o either_o these_o state_n be_v superfluous_a or_o else_o every_o man_n be_v a_o teacher_n and_o prophet_n but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v hard_a &_o full_a of_o difficulty_n if_o a_o young_a sophister_n have_v d._n heskin_n in_o the_o school_n at_o cambridge_n where_o sometime_o he_o have_v be_v a_o sophister_n he_o will_v with_o one_o common_a ward_n which_o be_v nego_fw-la consequentiam_fw-la avoid_v the_o pike_n of_o all_o these_o seven_o argument_n alas_o poor_a man_n be_v there_o no_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o such_o as_o may_v make_v a_o man_n a_o teacher_n &_o a_o extraordinary_a prophet_n be_v there_o no_o degree_n of_o knowledge_n but_o either_o the_o high_a perfection_n or_o the_o deep_a ignorance_n will_v this_o reason_n follow_v man_n may_v profit_v in_o knowledge_n by_o read_v therefore_o teach_v be_v superfluous_a or_o this_o teach_v be_v necessary_a therefore_o read_v be_v unprofitable_a what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o these_o reason_n but_o that_o they_o be_v give_v over_o into_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n which_o be_v so_o furious_o bend_v to_o withstand_v the_o truth_n that_o they_o set_v not_o forth_o so_o much_o as_o any_o shadow_n of_o reason_n the_o second_o chapter_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o easy_a recite_v certain_a hard_a and_o obscure_a place_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n hesk._n the_o purpose_n of_o this_o chapter_n as_o of_o the_o next_o also_o fulk_n be_v all_o together_o foolish_a and_o unreasonable_a for_o who_o be_v so_o mad_a to_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v diverse_a place_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v not_o only_o of_o the_o ignorant_a but_o even_o of_o the_o best_a learned_a yet_o do_v it_o not_o therefore_o follow_v because_o something_o be_v hard_a therefore_o all_o be_v so_o or_o because_o some_o place_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v hard_a therefore_o there_o be_v no_o profit_n in_o read_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o let_v we_o see_v these_o place_n recite_v first_o he_o name_v all_o the_o prophet_n the_o book_n of_o job_n the_o book_n of_o psalm_n the_o preacher_n &_o the_o song_n of_o solomon_n all_o which_o book_n in_o his_o judgement_n be_v so_o hard_o as_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v without_o a_o interpreter_n well_o let_v we_o grant_v great_a difficulty_n to_o be_v in_o these_o book_n as_o in_o diverse_a other_o be_v all_o time_n lose_v therefore_o that_o be_v spend_v in_o read_v of_o they_o the_o hard_a they_o be_v the_o more_o diligent_o they_o be_v to_o be_v red_a that_o they_o may_v be_v understand_v the_o difficulty_n to_o good_a scholar_n will_v not_o dull_a but_o whe●_z ●hei●_n desire_v to_o learn_v ▪_o to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o confer_v to_o se●●e_v 〈…〉_o to_o find_v concer●ing_v genesis_n he_o allege_v out_o of_o hieronyme_n the_o tradition_n of_o the_o unbel●uing_a jew_n that_o they_o may_v not_o read_v it_o before_o they_o be_v 30_o year_n old_a but_o hieronyme_n himself_o will_v have_v young_a child_n tender_a tong_n season_v with_o sweet_a psalm_n ▪_o and_o exercise_v in_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o prophet_n which_o you_o m._n heskin_n profess_v to_o be_v so_o difficult_a for_o he_o instruct_v laeta_n 〈◊〉_d she_o shall_v bring_v ●p_v her_o
be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n &_o a_o pure_a sacrifice_n wherefore_o our_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o most_o high_a god_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n we_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n a_o full_a 〈◊〉_d &_o holy_a sacrifice_n we_o sacrifice_v after_o a_o new_a manner_n according_a to_o the_o new_a testament_n a_o pure_a sacrifice_n etc_n etc_n m._n heskins_n ask_v we_o if_o we_o do_v not_o see_v that_o eusebius_n expound_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o we_o may_v well_o bid_v he_o shore_n up_o his_o eye_n &_o see_v if_o he_o do_v not_o in_o plain_a word_n expound_v he_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n but_o because_o he_o call_v this_o sacrifice_n horrorem_fw-la adferens_fw-la bring_v horror_n meaning_n not_o a_o slavish_a but_o a_o reverend_a fear_n as_o be_v mean_v to_o be_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v handle_v with_o fear_n and_o reverence_n of_o god_n majesty_n unto_o who_o they_o appertain_v he_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o first_o he_o allege_v a_o say_n of_o dionysius_n who_o he_o false_o call_v the_o disciple_n of_o saint_n paul_n although_o he_o be_v a_o writer_n of_o good_a antiquity_n eccle._n hier._n part_n 1._o cap._n 3._o neither_o be_v it_o almost_o lawful_a for_o any_o mystery_n of_o the_o priestly_a office_n to_o be_v do_v except_o that_o his_o divine_a and_o most_o noble_a sacrament_n of_o thanksgiving_n do_v fulfil_v be_v what_o he_o pick_v out_o of_o this_o say_n as_o he_o note_v not_o so_o i_o be_o not_o of_o his_o counsel_n to_o know_v neither_o why_o after_o his_o accustom_a boldness_n he_o translate_v sacramentum_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n from_o dionyse_n he_o flit_v to_o the_o hyperbolical_a amplification_n of_o chrysostom_n which_o lib._n 6._o de_fw-fr sacerdotio_fw-la call_v the_o sacrament_n that_o sacrifice_n most_o full_a of_o horror_n and_o reverence_n where_o the_o universal_a lord_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v daily_o feel_v with_o hand_n and_o the_o prod_n jud._n hom._n 30._o the_o holy_a and_o terrible_a sacrifice_n where_o christ_n that_o be_v slay_v be_v set_v forth_o he_o that_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v these_o and_o such_o like_a to_o be_v figurative_a speech_n must_v enter_v action_n against_o chrysostom_n for_o many_o heresy_n or_o rather_o chrysostom_n may_v enter_v action_n against_o he_o of_o slander_n and_o defamation_n in_o the_o same_o treatise_n de_fw-fr sacerdotio_fw-la lib._n 3._o speak_v of_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n he_o say_v you_o may_v see_v the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o people_n die_v and_o make_v read_v with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ._n but_o to_o show_v that_o all_o this_o be_v spiritual_a he_o demand_v if_o you_o think_v yourself_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o earth_n when_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n and_o not_o rather_o that_o you_o be_v translate_v into_o heaven_n and_o cast_v away_o all_o cogitation_n of_o the_o flesh_n with_o a_o naked_a soul_n and_o pure_a mind_n you_o behold_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n therefore_o to_o conclude_v neither_o augustine_n nor_o eusebius_n have_v speak_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o master_n heskin_n bill_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n the_o six_o and_o thirty_o chapter_n end_v the_o exposition_n of_o malachi_n by_o saint_n hierome_n and_o damascen_n hesk._n s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n write_v thus_o fulke_n ergo_fw-la propriè_fw-la nunc_fw-la ad_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la indeorun_n sermo_fw-la sit_fw-la domini_fw-la qui_fw-la offerunt_fw-la caecum_fw-la &_o clandus_fw-la &_o languidum_fw-la ad_fw-la immolandum_fw-la ut_fw-la sciant_fw-la carnalibꝰ_n victimis_fw-la spirituales_fw-la victimas_fw-la successuras_fw-la et_fw-la necquaquam_fw-la tantorum_fw-la hircerùmque_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la sed_fw-la thymiana_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la orationes_fw-la domino_fw-la offerendas_fw-la &_o non_fw-la in_o una_fw-la orbis_fw-la provincia_fw-la judaea_n nec_fw-la in_o una_fw-la judaea_n urbe_fw-la jerusalem_n say_v in_o omni_fw-la loco_fw-la offerri_fw-la oblationem_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la immundam_fw-la ut_fw-la a_o populo_fw-la israel_n sed_fw-la mundum_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o ceremonijs_fw-la christianorum_fw-la now_o therefore_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v proper_o speak_v to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o offer_v the_o blind_a and_o lamue_v and_o feeble_a to_o be_v sacrifice_v that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n shall_v succeed_v those_o carnal_a sacrifice_n and_o not_o the_o blood_n of_o bull_n and_o goat_n but_o a_o incense_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o not_o in_o one_o province_n of_o the_o world_n jewry_n neither_o in_o jerusalem_n one_o city_n of_o jewry_n but_o in_o every_o place_n a_o oblation_n be_v offer_v be_v unclean_a as_o of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n but_o clean_o as_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o christian_n do_v thou_o not_o marvel_v gentle_a reader_n that_o master_n heskins_n allege_v this_o place_n which_o in_o every_o point_n be_v so_o direct_o contrary_a to_o his_o purpose_n he_o say_v that_o among_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o christian_n none_o can_v be_v proper_o call_v the_o clean_a sacrifice_n but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n oh_o shameless_a beggar_n that_o crave_v no_o less_o than_o the_o whole_a controversy_n to_o be_v give_v he_o and_o that_o contrary_a to_o hierome_n who_o name_n he_o abuse_v which_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o more_o express_o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v not_o use_v in_o one_o but_o in_o all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o to_o set_v some_o colour_n upon_o the_o matter_n he_o bring_v in_o a_o other_o say_v of_o hierome_n which_o be_v write_v before_o this_o in_o exposition_n of_o another_o place_n pertain_v nothing_o to_o this_o prophecy_n of_o the_o pure_a sacrifice_n but_o where_o by_o analogy_n or_o like_a reason_n as_o the_o prophet_n rebuke_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o do_v reprehend_v also_o the_o bishop_n elder_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o negligence_n offertis_fw-la inquit_fw-la etc_n etc_n you_o offer_v say_v he_o upon_o my_o altar_n bread_n pollute_v we_o pollute_v the_o bread_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o come_v unworthy_o to_o the_o altar_n and_o we_o be_v filthy_a do_v drink_v clean_a blood_n and_o say_v the_o lord_n table_n be_v contemptible_a etc_n etc_n here_o forsooth_o we_o understand_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n yea_o but_o according_a to_o the_o former_a sentence_n so_o offer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n but_o what_o else_o here_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o do_v not_o take_v one_o thing_n videlicet_fw-la bread_n and_o do_v injury_n to_o another_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o sacramentary_n say_v but_o receive_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o same_o but_o vouchsafe_v to_o hear_v the_o same_o teacher_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o few_o word_n to_o satisfy_v the_o reasonable_a and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o quarreller_n dum_fw-la enim_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la violantur_fw-la ipse_fw-la cvius_fw-la sunt_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la violatur_fw-la for_o while_o injury_n be_v do_v to_o the_o sacrament_n injury_n be_v do_v to_o he_o who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v he_o show_v a_o reason_n against_o they_o that_o demand_v proud_o wherein_o they_o have_v pollute_v god_n when_o they_o have_v but_o pollute_v his_o sacrament_n leave_v therefore_o hierome_n at_o open_a war_n with_o m._n heskins_n i_o will_v pass_v to_o damascen_n who_o for_o lack_v of_o a_o greek_a ancient_a baron_n be_v a_o ancient_a burgess_n of_o the_o low_a house_n master_n heskin_n be_v bold_a to_o match_v with_o hironyme_n though_o far_o inferior_a to_o he_o in_o antiquity_n and_o credit_n who_o word_n be_v these_o 4._o this_o be_v that_o pure_a and_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n which_o our_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o the_o go_v down_o of_o the_o same_o namely_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o unconsume_v and_o uncorrupted_a establishment_n of_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n not_o go_v into_o secesse_n god_n forbid_v that_o any_o such_o imagination_n shall_v be_v but_o it_o be_v a_o purgation_n of_o all_o manner_n filth_n and_o a_o reparation_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o hurt_n unto_o our_o sustentation_n and_o conservation_n this_o place_n say_v master_n heskins_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o a_o child_n may_v perceive_v it_o for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o he_o if_o he_o hear_v once_o body_n and_o blood_n name_v howbeit_o if_o either_o damascens_n authority_n
be_v of_o weight_n or_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o he_o live_v unknown_a there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o say_n which_o may_v not_o easy_o and_o without_o any_o wrest_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n &_o to_o the_o spiritual_a manner_n of_o sacrifice_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o have_v learn_v out_o of_o the_o elder_a father_n the_o seven_o and_o thirty_o chapter_n make_v a_o brieefe_a recapitulation_n of_o thing_n before_o write_v with_o the_o application_n of_o they_o to_o hesk._n the_o proclamation_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o so_o conclude_v the_o first_o book_n it_o be_v but_o vain_a labour_n especial_o for_o i_o that_o profess_v such_o brevity_n fulk_n to_o repeat_v the_o answer_n and_o declaration_n make_v before_o that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o lord_n of_o the_o high_a house_n who_o he_o name_v favour_v his_o bill_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o such_o sense_n as_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n take_v it_o but_o whereas_o he_o be_v so_o lofty_a once_o again_o to_o join_v issue_n with_o the_o proclaimer_n &_o that_o as_o he_o have_v do_v always_o hitherto_o upon_o the_o negative_a i_o will_v not_o refuse_v he_o and_o yet_o by_o the_o way_n i_o must_v admonish_v the_o reader_n how_o unreasonable_o he_o deal_v that_o join_v all_o his_o issue_n upon_o the_o negative_a which_o sometime_o be_v hard_a sometime_o be_v unpossible_a to_o be_v prove_v whereas_o the_o bishop_n who_o he_o call_v the_o proclaimer_n join_v issue_n with_o they_o upon_o the_o affirmative_a which_o if_o ever_o it_o be_v hold_v be_v more_o probable_a to_o find_v proof_n in_o antiquity_n whereas_o if_o i_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o join_v upon_o the_o negative_a i_o will_v bring_v in_o five_o hundred_o proposition_n that_o be_v false_a and_o yet_o never_o a_o one_o express_o deny_v of_o the_o old_a writer_n because_o there_o never_o happen_v any_o controversy_n about_o such_o matter_n in_o their_o time_n but_o to_o his_o issue_n if_o he_o can_v bring_v any_o one_o sufficient_a authority_n that_o shall_v direct_o say_v that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o offer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o do_v i_o will_v give_v he_o the_o victory_n first_o here_o he_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v it_o be_v but_o wrest_v which_o be_v as_o direct_v as_o nothing_o in_o the_o world_n can_v be_v more_o direct_a that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o that_o but_o once_o and_o by_o that_o one_o oblation_n have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v but_o he_o shall_v hear_v chrysostom_n upon_o the_o same_o scripture_n hebr._n 10._o aufer●_n primum_fw-la ut_fw-la sequens_fw-la statuat_fw-la etc_n etc_n he_o take_v away_o the_o former_a that_o he_o may_v establish_v that_o which_o follow_v behold_v again_o the_o abundance_n this_o sacrifice_n say_v he_o be_v but_o one_o but_o those_o sacrifice_n be_v many_o for_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o strong_a because_o they_o be_v many_o but_o tell_v i_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o many_o when_o one_o be_v sufficient_a therefore_o whereas_o they_o be_v many_o and_o always_o offer_v he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v never_o purge_v for_o as_o a_o medicine_n when_o it_o be_v strong_a and_o effectual_a to_o give_v health_n and_o able_a to_o drive_v away_o all_o sickness_n be_v but_o once_o lay_v to_o work_v the_o whole_a at_o once_o if_o therefore_o be_v but_o once_o lay_v to_o it_o have_v wrought_v the_o whole_a it_o show_v the_o virtue_n thereof_o in_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lay_v to_o any_o more_o &_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v lay_v on_o no_o more_o but_o once_o but_o if_o it_o be_v always_o lay_v to_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a token_n that_o it_o prevail_v nothing_o for_o this_o be_v the_o virtue_n of_o that_o medicine_n that_o it_o be_v but_o once_o lay_v on_o and_o not_o oftentimes_o even_o so_o in_o this_o case_n by_o what_o mean_n be_v they_o always_o heal_v by_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v deliver_v from_o all_o their_o sin_n there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v offer_v sacrifice_n throughout_o every_o day_n for_o they_o be_v appoint_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v always_o offer_v for_o all_o the_o people_n both_o at_o evening_n &_o in_o the_o day_n therefore_o that_o be_v a_o accusation_n of_o sin_n not_o a_o discharge_n for_o there_o be_v make_v a_o accusation_n of_o weakness_n not_o a_o show_v of_o strength_n for_o because_o the_o first_o sacrifice_n be_v of_o no_o force_n the_o second_o be_v likewise_o offer_v &_o because_o that_o also_o profit_v nothing_o a_o other_o be_v offer_v also_o wherefore_o this_o be_v but_o a_o conviction_n of_o sin_n for_o in_o that_o they_o be_v offer_v there_o be_v a_o conviction_n of_o sin_n but_o in_o that_o they_o be_v always_o offer_v there_o be_v a_o conviction_n of_o infirmity_n but_o contrariwise_o in_o christ_n the_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o once_o offer_v for_o what_o need_n be_v there_o of_o medicine_n when_o there_o be_v no_o more_o wound_n remain_v for_o this_o cause_n you_o will_v say_v he_o command_v that_o it_o shall_v always_o be_v offer_v because_o of_o infirmity_n that_o there_o may_v be_v also_o a_o remembrance_n of_o sin_n what_o then_o do_v we●_z do_v we_o not_o offer_v every_o day_n we_o offer_v true_o but_o for_o a_o remembrance_n which_o we_o make_v of_o his_o death_n and_o this_o be_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n not_o many_o how_o be_v it_o one_o and_o not_o many_o because_o it_o be_v offer_v but_o once_o and_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o holy_a of_o holy_n but_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v a_o exemplar_n of_o that_o we_o offer_v the_o same_o always_o for_o we_o do_v not_o now_o offer_v one_o lamb_n to_o morrow_n a_o other_o but_o the_o same_o thing_n always_o therefore_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o one_o for_o else_o by_o this_o reason_n because_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o many_o place_n be_v there_o many_o christ_n no_o but_o one_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o both_o here_o be_v perfect_a and_o there_o be_v perfect_a even_o one_o body_n for_o as_o he_o which_o be_v every_o where_o be_v one_o body_n and_o not_o many_o body_n so_o also_o it_o be_v one_o sacrifice_n and_o he_o be_v our_o high_a priest_n which_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o purge_v we_o the_o same_o do_v we_o also_o offer_v now_o which_o then_o true_o be_v offer_v can_v not_o be_v consume_v howbeit_o that_o which_o we_o do_v now_o be_v do_v true_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v then_o for_o this_o do_v you_o say_v he_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o we_o make_v not_o a_o other_o sacrifice_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n but_o always_o the_o same_o but_o rather_o we_o work_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o same_o this_o place_n of_o chrysostom_n show_v both_o that_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v nor_o may_v offer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o be_v real_o and_o carnal_o and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o also_o how_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n namely_o when_o she_o celebrate_v the_o remembrance_n thereof_o after_o this_o holy_a issue_n join_v m._n heskins_n rail_v upon_o cranmer_n which_o in_o his_o first_o book_n have_v not_o one_o doctor_n or_o counsel_n to_o allege_v but_o only_o a_o little_a false_a descant_n upon_o a_o scripture_n or_o two_o as_o the_o proclaimer_n in_o his_o sermon_n what_o read_v cranmer_n and_o jewel_n be_v able_a to_o show_v in_o the_o doctor_n and_o counsel_n be_v so_o well_o testify_v by_o their_o own_o learned_a work_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o it_o can_v not_o by_o such_o a_o obscure_a doctor_n as_o m._n hesk._n be_v be_v blemish_v or_o darken_v but_o m._n heskins_n have_v such_o store_n of_o testimony_n for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o prove_v that_o christ_n be_v offer_v therein_o that_o beside_o those_o which_o he_o have_v already_o cite_v he_o will_v add_v three_o or_o four_o to_o this_o recapitulation_n first_o he_o name_v justinus_n martyr_n in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o jew_n where_o he_o allege_v his_o word_n truncat_o leave_v out_o the_o beginning_n ▪_o which_o declare_v that_o justine_n make_v all_o christian_n priest_n and_o offerer_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d even_o so_o we_o which_o by_o the_o name_n of_o jesusas_n all_o shall_v be_v one_o man_n in_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n have_v put_v off_o our_o
before_o bread_n dunce_n hold_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o transubstantiation_n grant_v yet_o the_o presence_n may_v well_o stand_v and_o the_o adoration_n to_o as_o master_n rastel_n say_v but_o he_o take_v part_n with_o thomas_n but_o if_o the_o reason_n of_o thomas_n be_v good_a for_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bread_n because_o it_o be_v a_o creature_n why_o not_o also_o for_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n which_o be_v creature_n also_o ▪_o to_o the_o say_n of_o augustine_n in_o sermo_fw-la ad_fw-la infant_n that_o which_o you_o see_v on_o the_o table_n be_v bread_n master_n rastel_n say_v it_o be_v a_o reason_n of_o tinker_n tailor_n and_o cobbler_n oh_o learned_a clerk_n and_o not_o of_o learned_a scholar_n to_o say_v it_o be_v bread_n because_o it_o be_v call_v bread_n but_o learned_a master_n rastel_n saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o say_v it_o be_v call_v bread_n but_o he_o say_v it_o be_v bread_n and_o moreover_o he_o make_v their_o sense_n judge_n thereof_o quid-etiam_a oculi_fw-la vestri_fw-la renunciant_fw-la which_o also_o your_o eye_n do_v tell_v you_o and_o that_o your_o learned_a pen_n have_v set_v down_o out_o of_o prospero_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o augustine_n work_n yet_o make_v it_o nothing_o against_o the_o remain_a of_o bread_n but_o only_o say_v that_o under_o the_o visible_a kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o honour_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n to_o the_o say_n of_o gelasius_n that_o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v he_o answer_v that_o gelasius_n do_v expound_v himself_o straight_o after_o where_o he_o say_v but_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o nature_n as_o though_o nothing_o remain_v but_o whitensse_n thickness_n etc_n etc_n oh_o impudent_a falsifier_n be_v substance_n and_o property_n of_o nature_n all_o one_o again_o i_o ask_v what_o be_v they_o that_o remain_v in_o their_o property_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n final_o the_o very_a argument_n which_o he_o use_v against_o eutiche_n most_o plain_o confute_v rastell_n for_o a_o most_o shameful_a and_o shameless_a perverter_n of_o this_o doctor_n meaning_n for_o he_o conclude_v that_o as_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o the_o body_n in_o christ_n after_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o like_a beastly_a rack_a he_o use_v of_o the_o word_n of_o theodoret_n which_o use_v the_o same_o argument_n against_o the_o eutichian_n but_o in_o the_o end_n he_o say_v it_o must_v not_o be_v consider_v what_o one_o or_o two_o have_v say_v but_o what_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n be_v and_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o gelasius_n and_o theodoret_n deny_v transubstantiation_n yet_o they_o grant_v the_o carnal_a presence_n it_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o against_o the_o catholic_n which_o hold_v of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o laterane_n what_o say_v you_o learned_a m._n rastel_n be_v it_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v nor_o make_v it_o any_o thing_n against_o you_o what_o gelasius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v write_v which_o you_o hold_v can_v not_o err_v but_o where_o he_o say_v that_o they_o both_o grant_v the_o carnal_a presence_n i_o must_v send_v the_o reader_n to_o my_o answer_n unto_o the_o 60._o chapter_n of_o the_o 3._o book_n of_o hesk._n parlea_n for_o gelasius_n and_o to_o the_o 52._o and_o 56._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n for_o theodoret_n how_o unlearned_o he_o affirm_v cyprian_n error_n of_o rebaptisation_n to_o be_v no_o heresy_n because_o the_o church_n have_v not_o determine_v the_o contrary_n i_o pass_v over_o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v against_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n a_o whole_a council_n in_o africa_n be_v for_o it_o sectio_fw-la 31._o in_o the_o 98._o leaf_n rastell_n the_o bishop_n show_v out_o of_o the_o school_n man_n fulk_n that_o if_o a_o man_n worship_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n idolatry_n may_v be_v do_v to_o the_o sacrament_n m._n rastell_n say_v not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o the_o accident_n but_o do_v not_o you_o papist_n call_v the_o accident_n the_o sacrament_n else_o what_o difference_n make_v you_o between_o sacramentum_fw-la &_o rem_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la in_o s._n augustine_n the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n again_o he_o say_v the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v no_o better_o teach_v as_o though_o christ_n do_v ever_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v worship_v after_o any_o manner_n of_o latri●_n or_o doulia_fw-la of_o which_o he_o reason_v brutish_o with_o put_v such_o case_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v worship_v the_o only_a face_n of_o christ_n as_o god_n which_o no_o man_n will_v ever_o have_v do_v or_o his_o garment_n which_o have_v be_v idolatry_n whosoever_o have_v do_v it_o sectio_fw-la 32._o from_o the_o 99_o leaf_n to_o the_o 103._o leaf_n rastell_n whereas_o the_o bishop_n lament_v the_o miserable_a case_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v bring_v into_o idolatry_n ▪_o fulk_n with_o these_o blind_a distinction_n m._n rast._n deride_v his_o needless_a and_o foolish_a pity_n lament_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n when_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v conclude_v in_o school_n shall_v be_v open_v in_o pulpit_n as_o though_o there_o be_v one_o doctrine_n of_o god_n for_o the_o school_n and_o another_o for_o the_o pulpit_n yet_o he_o think_v it_o not_o meet_v to_o teach_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o trinity_n but_o only_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v believe_v as_o well_o in_o the_o trinity_n as_o in_o all_o other_o article_n and_o namely_o in_o this_o of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o position_n of_o he_o if_o it_o may_v stand_v there_o need_v none_o other_o creed_n to_o be_v preach_v but_o only_o this_o short_a curtal_n creed_n believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v &_o you_o can_v do_v amiss_o but_o in_o time_n of_o popish_a tyranny_n you_o will_v not_o have_v be_v satisfy_v if_o a_o man_n examine_v of_o his_o faith_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v answer_v i_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n teach_v or_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n say_v it_o and_o mean_v it_o to_o be_v his_o body_n but_o than_o you_o must_v grope_v he_o in_o flesh_n blood_n and_o bone_n as_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n etc_n etc_n whether_o he_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n to_o remain_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n speak_v by_o the_o priest_n etc_n etc_n well_o howsoever_o it_o be_v all_o learning_n rest_v in_o the_o breast_n of_o reverend_a m._n rast._n m_o of_o art_n &_o student_n in_o divinity_n who_o can_v with_o one_o breath_n condemn_v all_o the_o pedlar_n and_o pelt_a craftesmens_n argument_n devise_v in_o alehouse_n or_o shop_n and_o after_o recite_v in_o the_o protestant_n school_n as_o this_o christ_n be_v ascend_v in_o body_n in_o to_o heaven_n and_o there_o sit_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o he_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o earth_n in_o body_n and_o consequent_o be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n a_o unlearned_a argument_n say_v m._n ra._n as_o this_o can_v a_o priest_n make_v god_n but_o learned_a sir_n who_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o call_v that_o which_o the_o priest_n make_v their_o maker_n or_o what_o or_o which_o of_o all_o the_o reverend_a rabbin_n of_o popery_n do_v reprove_v the_o people_n for_o so_o speak_v again_o can_v one_o body_n be_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o at_o one_o time_n a_o argument_n of_o ignorant_a people_n oh_o unlearned_a augustine_n which_o have_v define_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n at_o one_o time_n in_o joan._n cap._n 7._o tr._n 30._o if_o a_o mouse_n eat_v the_o hos●_n do_v he_o ease_v christ_n body_n a_o pelt_v craftesmans_n argument_n what_o m._n rast._n be_v you_o so_o arrogant_a in_o opinion_n of_o your_o own_o learning_n that_o you_o will_v condemn_v all_o the_o schoolman_n for_o pedlar_n and_o tinker_n that_o have_v move_v argue_v &_o decide_v this_o question_n and_o a_o hundred_o like_a unto_o it_o come_v this_o question_n from_o protestant_n or_o from_o your_o own_o popish_a school_n &_o not_o from_o the_o school_n only_o but_o even_o the_o instruction_n that_o have_v be_v write_v for_o every_o simple_a curate_n as_o manupulus_fw-la curatorum_fw-la etc_n etc_n but_o if_o a_o learned_a man_n expert_a in_o liberal_a science_n say_v m._n rast._n a_o great_a master_n of_o liberal_a art_n shall_v use_v this_o argument_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o christ_n body_n
to_o be_v in_o on_o place_n they_o it_o be_v time_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n how_o i_o pray_v you_o because_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o substance_n which_o occupy_v no_o place_n be_v this_o the_o philosophy_n of_o louvain_n no_o marvel_n if_o ramus_n reprove_v aristotle_n in_o logic_n when_o rastell_n will_v set_v not_o he_o only_o but_o all_o the_o philosopher_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o nature_n itself_o to_o school_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o substance_n to_o occupy_v no_o place_n which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o to_o be_v no_o where_o and_o as_o augustine_n say_v that_o which_o be_v not_o where_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o and_o so_o by_o master_n rastel_n profound_a physical_a philosophy_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o substance_n which_o all_o other_o man_n affirm_v to_o contain_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o but_o for_o a_o further_a resolution_n he_o say_v christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o as_o in_o a_o place_n local_o but_o as_o under_o form_n of_o bread_n substantial_o for_o before_o he_o have_v define_v a_o substance_n to_o be_v in_o no_o place_n i_o will_v he_o can_v hold_v he_o at_o this_o definition_n of_o christ_n presence_n if_o i_o shall_v reason_v with_o he_o of_o the_o nine_o manner_n of_o inesse_fw-la or_o be_v in_o a_o thing_n and_o ask_v he_o after_o which_o of_o they_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n perhaps_o he_o will_v reject_v that_o distribution_n as_o sophistical_a and_o unworthy_a of_o his_o learned_a answer_n but_o christ_n say_v he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o as_o in_o place_n local_o then_o say_v i_o a_o man_n point_v to_o the_o pyx_n hang_v over_o the_o altar_n in_o which_o the_o consecrate_a cake_n be_v must_v say_v if_o he_o say_v true_o christ_n be_v not_o there_o likewise_o point_v to_o the_o same_o hold_v up_o at_o the_o sacringe_n carry_v in_o procession_n or_o wheresoever_o he_o see_v it_o must_v likewise_o believe_v and_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o there_o for_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o be_v a_o master_n in_o all_o the_o seven_o liberal_a art_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a in_o grammar_n but_o he_o will_v confess_v this_o word_n there_o to_o be_v a_o adverb_n of_o place_n not_o so_o forgetful_a of_o logic_n but_o that_o he_o remember_v what_o the_o predicament_n vbi_fw-la mean_v and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n if_o the_o papist_n can_v be_v content_a with_o such_o modest_a term_n as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o a_o wonderful_a and_o mystical_a manner_n there_o need_v neither_o these_o fond_a question_n nor_o any_o so_o bitter_a contention_n about_o the_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n but_o that_o they_o will_v make_v a_o idol_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o a_o bait_n to_o satisfy_v their_o ambition_n covetousness_n â–ª_o &_o licentiousness_n by_o the_o sale_n of_o their_o mass_n &_o apply_v of_o their_o merit_n these_o gross_a and_o monstrous_a absurdity_n have_v never_o be_v defend_v the_o contention_n of_o the_o school_n doctor_n he_o force_v not_o upon_o so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n agree_v but_o can_v your_o church_n agree_v m._n rast._n when_o the_o doctor_n thereof_o dissent_v if_o any_o difference_n of_o opinion_n be_v between_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la you_o cry_v out_o of_o our_o dissension_n if_o your_o church_n may_v agree_v within_o itself_o notwithstanding_o the_o infinite_a brawl_n between_o the_o thomist_n and_o scotist_n albertist_n occanist_n about_o small_a matter_n as_o you_o say_v because_o all_o those_o agree_v in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o popery_n i_o pray_v you_o let_v there_o be_v unity_n in_o our_o church_n notwithstan-the_a teacher_n vary_v in_o some_o matter_n not_o of_o great_a moment_n agree_v in_o all_o necessary_a article_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o if_o holcot_n lie_v in_o say_v a_o man_n may_v merit_v by_o worship_v the_o devil_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o popish_a catholic_a let_v luther_n err_v in_o defend_v the_o carnal_a presence_n and_o yet_o be_v good_a christian_n catholic_a and_o if_o your_o church_n be_v not_o chargeable_a with_o holcot_n lie_v why_o shall_v our_o church_n bear_v the_o blame_n of_o luther_n error_n as_o for_o your_o excuse_n of_o holcot_n lie_v by_o the_o school_n distinction_n of_o a_o thing_n do_v material_o &_o formal_o wherein_o you_o show_v a_o high_a point_n of_o learning_n with_o your_o example_n of_o worship_n of_o luther_n be_v a_o devil_n in_o form_n of_o a_o doctor_n i_o say_v it_o be_v wholesome_a divinity_n to_o justify_v all_o superstition_n mahometry_n and_o idolatry_n in_o the_o world_n not_o only_o to_o be_v excusable_a but_o also_o to_o be_v meritorious_a sectio_fw-la 33._o from_o the_o first_o face_n of_o the_o 103._o leaf_n to_o the_o 104._o leaf_n rastle_v where_o the_o bishop_n say_v he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o spend_v time_n in_o discover_v the_o mystery_n of_o popish_a learning_n fulk_n but_o that_o the_o importunity_n of_o papist_n boast_v as_o though_o all_o learning_n be_v on_o their_o side_n enforce_v he_o master_n rastell_n more_o like_o a_o parasite_n to_o provoke_v his_o popish_a reader_n to_o laugh_v than_o a_o man_n either_o of_o wisdom_n or_o honesty_n scoff_v &_o rail_v on_o he_o call_v he_o a_o bench_n wistler_n rather_o they_o a_o preacher_n but_o of_o both_o their_o learn_n let_v the_o world_n judge_v sectio_fw-la 34._o from_o the_o 104._o leaf_n to_o the_o 111._o in_o which_o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o defend_v the_o vanity_n of_o popish_a argument_n use_v by_o papist_n under_o colour_n of_o similitude_n and_o allusion_n rastell_n the_o bishop_n discover_v this_o reason_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o third_o god_n make_v two_o light_n fulk_n the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o much_o above_o the_o emperor_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v above_o the_o moon_n master_n rastell_n be_v angry_a at_o this_o discovery_n say_v it_o be_v no_o mystery_n nor_o argument_n of_o strength_n yet_o be_v it_o use_v by_o the_o pope_n holiness_n which_o can_v err_v but_o the_o church_n have_v strong_a argument_n for_o proof_n of_o this_o conclusion_n first_o say_v master_n rastell_n that_o there_o be_v two_o state_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a it_o be_v prove_v by_o other_o reason_n and_o the_o first_o reason_n he_o use_v to_o prove_v the_o state_n spiritual_a be_v much_o like_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n which_o he_o excuse_v psal._n 44_o â–ª_o and_o in_o steed_n of_o thy_o father_n there_o be_v son_n bear_v unto_o thou_o meaning_n say_v he_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n and_o their_o successor_n they_o shall_v thou_o appoint_v prince_n and_o ruler_n over_o all_o the_o whole_a earth_n as_o though_o none_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o as_o though_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o temporal_a rule_n in_o this_o life_n and_o not_o of_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n and_o inheritance_n of_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o faithful_a after_o this_o life_n but_o to_o omit_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o controversy_n of_o two_o state_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o excellency_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n above_o the_o office_n of_o prince_n yet_o who_o will_v either_o grant_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v simple_o superior_a to_o the_o king_n or_o emperor_n so_o that_o the_o minister_n be_v not_o his_o subject_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n in_o any_o respect_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o dignity_n as_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o he_o disdain_v to_o preach_v another_o defence_n of_o this_o pontifical_a argument_n be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sweet_a and_o mystical_a allusion_n in_o his_o familiar_a letter_n to_o the_o emperor_n in_o deed_n great_a familiarity_n he_o have_v with_o the_o emperor_n of_o his_o time_n with_o who_o he_o be_v in_o continual_a discord_n last_o of_o all_o like_a a_o blasphemous_a dog_n he_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o argument_n use_v by_o s._n paul_n for_o the_o cover_n of_o woman_n head_n take_v of_o nature_n itself_o which_o though_o it_o will_v not_o satisfy_v a_o contentious_a person_n who_o nothing_o will_v satisfy_v yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_a and_o strong_a enough_o to_o prove_v what_o natural_a comeliness_n require_v in_o that_o case_n where_o as_o this_o of_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o shadow_n of_o reason_n in_o it_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o argument_n rehearse_v by_o the_o bishop_n he_o make_v that_o general_a reason_n that_o their_o church_n have_v no_o custom_n to_o contend_v for_o they_o yet_o have_v they_o a_o custom_n to_o burn_v man_n for_o refuse_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o contend_v